Cleric
Quintet
R.A.Salvatore
Book 1:
"Canticle"
Prologue
Aballister
Bonaduce looked long and hard at the shimmering image in his mirror. Mountains
of wind-driven snow and ice lay endlessly before him, the most forbidding place
in all the Realms. All he had to do was step through the mirror, onto the Great
Glacier.
"Are
you coming, Druzil?" the wizard said to his bat-winged imp.
Druzil
folded his leathery wings around him as if to privately consider the question.
"I am not so fond of the cold," he said, obviously not wanting to
partake of this particular hunt. "Nor am I," Aballister said,
slipping onto his finger an enchanted ring that would protect him from the
killing cold. "But only on the Great Glacier does the yote grow."
Aballister looked back to the scene in the magical mirror, one final barrier to
the completion of his quest and the beginning of his conquests. The snowy
region was quiet now, though dark clouds hung ominously overhead and promised
an impending storm that would delay the hunt, perhaps for many days.
"There
we must go," Aballister continued, talking more to himself than to the
imp. His voice trailed away as he sank within his memories, to the turning
point in his life more than two years before, in the Time of Troubles. He had
been powerful even then, but directionless.
The
avatar of the goddess Talona had shown him the way.
Aballister's
grin became an open chuckle as he turned back to regard Druzil, the imp who had
delivered to him the method to best please the Lady of Poison. "Come, dear
Druzil," Aballister said. "You brought the recipe for the chaos
curse. You must come along and help to find its last ingredient."
The imp
straightened and unfolded his wings at the mention of the chaos curse. This
time he offered no arguments. A lazy flap brought him to Aballister's shoulder
and together they walked through the magical mirror and into the blowing wind.
* * * *
*
The
hunched and hairy creature, resembling a more primitive form of human, grunted
and growled and threw its crude spear, though Aballister and Druzil were surely
far out of range. It howled again anyway, triumphantly, as though its throw had
served some symbolic victory, and scooted back to the large gathering of its
shaggy white kin.
"I
believe they do not wish to bargain," Druzil said, shuffling about from
clawed foot to clawed foot on Aballister's shoulder.
The
wizard understood his familiar's excitement. Druzil was a creature of the lower
planes, a creature of chaos, and he wanted desperately to see his wizard master
deal with the impudent fools-just an added pleasure to this long-awaited,
victorious day.
"They
are taer," Aballister explained, recognizing the tribe, "crude and
fierce. You are quite correct. They'll not bargain." Aballister's eyes
flashed suddenly and Druzil hopped again and clapped his hands together.
"They
know not the might before them!" Aballister cried, his voice rising with
his ire. All the terrible trials of two long and brutal years rolled through
the wizard's thoughts in the span of a few seconds. A hundred men had died in
search of the elusive ingredients for the chaos curse; a hundred men had given
their lives so that Talona would be pleased. Aballister, too, had not escaped
unscathed. Completing the curse had become his obsession, the driving force in
his life, and he had aged with every step, had torn out clumps of his own hair
every time the curse seemed to be slipping beyond his reach. Now he was close,
so close that he could see the dark patch of yote just beyond the small ridge
that held the taer cave complexes. So close, but these wretched, idiotic
creatures stood in his way.
Aballister's
words had stirred the taer. They grumbled and hopped about in the shadow of the
jagged mountain, shoving each other forward as if trying to select a leader to
start their charge.
"Do
something quickly," Druzil suggested from his perch. Aballister looked up
at him and nearly laughed.
"They
will attack," Druzil explained, trying to sound unconcerned, "and,
worse, this cold stiffens my wings."
Aballister
nodded at the imp's rationale. Any delay could cost him, especially if the dark
clouds broke into a blinding blizzard, one that would hide both the yote and
the shimmering doorway back to Aballister's comfortable room. He pulled out a
tiny ball, a mixture of bat guano and sulphur, crushed it in his fist, and
pointed one finger at the group of taer. His chant echoed off the mountain face
and back across the empty glacier ice, and he smiled, thinking it wonderfully
ironic that the stupid taer had no idea of what he was doing. A moment later,
they found out.
Just
before his spell discharged, Aballister had a cruel thought and lifted the
angle of his pointing finger. The fireball exploded above the heads of the
startled taer, disintegrating the frozen bindings of the ice mountain. Huge
blocks rained down, and a great rush of water swallowed those who had not been
crushed. Several of the band floundered about in the ice and liquid morass, too
stunned and overwhelmed to gain then-footing as the pool quickly solidified
around them.
One
pitiful creature did manage to struggle free, but Druzil hopped off
Aballister's shoulder and swooped down upon him. The imp's claw-tipped tail
whipped out as he passed by the stumbling creature, and Aballister applauded
heartily.
The
taer clutched at its stung shoulder, looked curiously at the departing imp,
then fell dead to the ice.
"What
of the rest?" Druzil asked, landing back on his perch. Aballister
considered the remaining taer, most dead, but some struggling fertilely against
the tightening grip of ice.
"Leave
them to their slow deaths," he replied, and he laughed evilly again.
Druzil
gave him an incredulous look, "The Lady of Poison would not approve,"
the imp said, wagging his wicked tail before him with one hand.
"Very
well," Aballister replied, though he realized that Druzil was more
interested in pleasing himself than Talona. Still, the reasoning was sound;
poison was always the accepted method for completing Talona's work. "Go
and finish the task," Aballister instructed the imp. "I will get the
yote."
A short
while later, Aballister plucked the last gray-brown mushroom from its stubborn
grasp on the glacier and dropped it into his bag. He called over to Druzil, who
was toying with the last whining taer, snapping his tail back and forth around
the terrified creature's frantically jerking head-the only part of the taer
that was free of the ice trap.
"Enough,"
Aballister said firmly.
Druzil
sighed and looked mournfully at the approaching wizard. Aballister's visage did
not soften. "Enough," he said again.
Druzil
bent over and kissed the taer on the nose. The creature stopped whimpering and
looked at him curiously, but Druzil only shrugged and drove his poison-tipped
stinger straight into the taer's weepy eye.
The imp
eagerly accepted the offered perch on Aballister's shoulder Aballister let him
hold the bag of yote, just to remind the somewhat distracted imp that more
important matters awaited them beyond the shimmering door.
The
White Squirrel's Pet
The
green-robed druid issued a series of chit-chits and clucks, but the
white-furred squirrel seemed oblivious to it all, sitting on a branch in the
towering oak tree high above the three men. "Will, you seem to have lost
your voice," remarked another of the men, a bearded woodland priest with
gentle-looking features and thick blond hair hanging well below his shoulders.
"Can
you call the beast any better than I?" the green-robed druid asked
indignantly. "I fear that this creature is strange in more ways than its
coat."
The
other two laughed at their companion's attempt to explain his ineptitude.
"I
grant you," said the third of the group, the highest-ranking initiate,
"the squirrel's color is beyond the usual, but speaking to animals is
among the easiest of our abilities. Surely by now-"
"With
all respect," the frustrated druid interrupted, "I have made contact
with the creature. It just refuses to reply. Try yourself, I invite you."
"A
squirrel refusing to speak?" asked the second of the group with a chuckle.
"Surely they are among the chattiest..."
"Not
that one," came a reply from behind. The three druids turned to see a
priest coming down the wide dirt road from the ivy-streaked building, the skip
of youth evident in his steps. He was of average height and build, though
perhaps more muscular than most, with gray eyes that turned up at their comers
when he smiled and curly brown locks that bounced under the wide brim of his
hat. His tan-white tunic and trousers showed him to be a priest of Deneir, god
of one of the host sects of the Edificant Library. Unlike most within his
order, though, this young man also wore a decorative light blue silken cape and
a wide-brimmed hat, also blue and banded in red, with a plume on the right-hand
side. Set in the band's center was a porcelain-and-gold pendant depicting a
candle burning above an eye, the symbol of Deneir.
"That
squirrel is tight-lipped, except when he chooses not to be," the young
priest went on. The normally unflappable druids' stunned expressions amused
him, so he decided to startle them a bit more. "Well met, Arcite,
Newander, and Cleo. I congratulate you, Cleo, on your ascension to the status
of initiate."
"How
do you know of us?" asked Arcite, the druid leader. "We have not yet
reported to the library and have told no one of our coming." Arcite and
Newander, the blond-haired priest, exchanged suspicious glances, and Arcite's
voice became stem. "Have your masters been scrying, looking for us with
magical means?"
"No,
no, nothing like that," the young priest replied immediately, knowing the
secretive druids' aversion to such tactics. "I remember you, all three,
from your last visit to the library."
"Preposterous!"
piped in Cleo. "That was fourteen years ago. You could not have been more
than ..."
"A
boy," answered the young priest. "So I was, seven years old. You had
a fourth to your party, as I recall, an aging lady of great powers. Shannon, I
believe was her name."
"Incredible,"
muttered Arcite. "You are correct, young priest." Again the druids
exchanged concerned looks, suspecting trickery here. Druids were not overly
fond of anyone not of their order; they rarely came to the renowned Edificant
Library, sitting high in the secluded Snowflake Mountains, and then only when
they had word of a discovery of particular interest, a rare tome of herbs or
animals, or a new recipe for potions to heal wounds or better grow their
gardens. As a group, they began to turn away, rudely, but then Newander, on a
sudden impulse, spun back around to face the young priest, who now leaned
casually on a fine walking stick, its silver handle sculpted masterfully into
the image of a ram's head.
"Cadderly?"
Newander asked through a widening grin. Arcite, too, recognized the young man
and remembered the unusual story of the most unusual child. Cadderly had come
to live at the library before his fifth birthday-rarely were any accepted
before the age of ten. His mother had died several months before that, and his
father, too immersed in studies of his own, had neglected the child. Thobicus,
the dean of the Edificant Library, had heard of the promising boy and had
generously taken him in.
"Cadderly,"
Arcite echoed. "Is that really you?" "At your service,"
Cadderly replied, bowing low, "and well met. I am honored that you remember
me, good Newander and venerable Arcite."
"Who?"
Cleo whispered, looking curiously to Newander. Cleo's face, too, brightened in
recognition a few moments later.
"Yes,
you were just a boy," said Newander, "an overly curious little boy,
as I recall!"
"Forgive
me," said Cadderly, bowing again. "One does not often find the
opportunity to converse with a troupe of druids!"
"Few
would care to," remarked Arcite, "but you ... are among that few, so
it would appear."
Cadderly nodded, but his smile suddenly
disappeared. "I pray that nothing has happened to Shannon," he said,
truly concerned. The druid had treated him well on that long-ago occasion. She
had shown him beneficial plants, tasty roots, and had made flowers bloom before
his eyes. To Cadderly's astonishment, Shannon had transformed herself, an
ability of the most powerful druids, into a graceful swan and had flown high
into the morning sky. Cadderly had dearly wished to join her-he remembered that
longing most vividly-but the druid had no power to similarly transform him.
"Nothing
terrible, if that is what you mean," replied Arcite. "She died
several years back, peacefully."
Cadderly
nodded. He was about to offer his condolences, but he prudently remembered that
druids neither feared nor lamented death, seeing it as the natural conclusion
to life and a rather unimportant event in the overall scheme of universal
order.
"Do
you know this squirrel?" asked Cleo suddenly, determined to restore his
reputation.
"Percival,"
Cadderly replied, "a friend of mine."
"A
pet?" Newander asked, his bright eyes narrowing suspiciously. Druids did
not approve of people keeping pets.
Cadderly
laughed heartily. "If any is the pet in our relationship, I fear it is
I," he said honestly. "Percival accepts my strokes-sometimes-and my
food-rather eagerly-but as I am more interested in him than he in me, he is the
one who decides when and where."
The
druids shared Cadderly's laugh. "A most excellent beast," said
Arcite, then with a series of clicks and chits, he congratulated Percival.
"Wonderful,"
came Cadderly's sarcastic response, "encourage him." The druids'
laughter increased and Percival, watching it all from his high branch, shot
Cadderly a supercilious look.
"Well,
come down here and say hello!" Cadderly called, banging the lowest tree
branch with his walking stick. "Be polite, at least."
Percival
did not look up from the acorn he was munching.
"He
does not understand, I fear," said Cleo. "Perhaps if I translate ..."
"He
understands," Cadderly insisted, "as well as you or I. He is just a
stubborn one, and I can prove it!" He looked back up to the squirrel.
"When you find the time, Percival," he said slyly, "I left a
plate of cacasa-nut and butter out for you in my room ... ." Before Cadderly
even finished, the squirrel whipped off along a branch, hopped to another, and
then to the next tree in line along the road. In a few short moments, the
squirrel had leaped to a gutter along the library's roof and, not slowing a
bit, zipped across a trail of thick ivy and in through an open window on the
northern side of the large structure's third floor.
"Percival
does have such a weakness for cacasa-nut and butter," Cadderly remarked
when the druid's laughter had subsided.
"A
most excellent beast!" Arcite said again. "And yourself, Cadderly, it
is good to see that you have remained with your studies. Your masters spoke
highly of your potential fourteen years ago, but I had no idea that your memory
would be so very sharp, or, perhaps, that we druids had left such a strong and
favorable impression upon you."
"It
is," Cadderly replied quietly, "and you did! I am glad that you have
returned-for the recently uncovered treatise on woodland mosses, I would
assume. I have not seen it yet. The headmasters have kept it secured until those
more knowledgeable in such matters could come and appraise its value. You see,
a band of druids was not wholly unexpected, though we knew not who, how many,
or when you would arrive."
The
three druids nodded, admiring the ivy-veiled stone structure. The Edificant
Library had stood for six hundred years, and in all that time its doors had
never been closed to scholars of any but the evil religions. The building was
huge, a self-contained town-it had to be, in the rough and secluded
Snowflakes-more than four hundred feet across
and half as deep through all four of its above-ground levels. Will staffed and
well stocked-rumors spoke of miles of storage tunnels and catacombs beneath-it
had survived ore attacks, giant-hurled boulders, and the most brutal mountain
winters, and had remained unscathed through the centuries.
The
library's collection of books, parchments, and artifacts was considerable,
filling nearly the entire first floor, the library proper, and many smaller
study chambers on the second floor, and the complex contained many unique and
ancient works. While not as large as the great libraries of the Realms, such as
the treasured collections of Silverymoon to the north and the artifact museums
of Calimport to the south, the Edificant Library was convenient to the
west-central Realms and the Cormyr region and was open to all who wished to
learn, on the condition that they did not plan to use their knowledge for
baneful purposes.
The
building housed other important research tools, such as alchemy and herbalist
shops, and was set in an inspiring atmosphere with breathtaking mountain views
and manicured grounds that included a small topiary garden. The Edificant
Library had been designed as more than a storage house for old books; it was a
place for poetry reading, painting, and sculpting, a place for discussions of
the profound and often unanswerable questions common to the intelligent races.
Indeed, the library was a fitting tribute to Deneir and Oghma, the allied gods
of knowledge, literature, and art.
"The
treatise is a large work, so I have been told," said Arcite. "Much
time will be expended in examining it properly. I pray that the boarding rates
are not excessive. We are men of little material means."
"Dean
Thobicus will take you in without cost, I would expect," answered
Cadderly. "Your service cannot be underestimated in this matter." He
shot a wink at Arcite. "If not, come to me. I recently inscribed a tome
for a nearby wizard, a spellbook he lost in a fire. The man was generous. You
see, I had originally inscribed the
spellbook, and the wizard, forgetful as most wizards seem to be, never had made
a copy."
"The
work was unique?" Cleo asked, shaking his head in disbelief that a wizard
could be so foolish with his most prized possession.
"It
was," Cadderly replied, tapping his temple, "except for in
here."
"'You
remembered the intricacies of a wizard's spellbook enough to recreate it from
memory?" Cleo asked, stunned.
Cadderly
shrugged his shoulders. "The wizard was generous."
"Truly
you are a remarkable one, young Cadderly," said Arcite.
"A
most excellent beast?" the young priest asked hopefully, drawing wide
smiles from all three.
"Indeed!"
said Arcite. "Do look in on us in the days ahead." Given the druids'
reputation for seclusion, Cadderly understood how great a compliment he had
just been paid. He bowed low, and the druids did likewise, then they bid
Cadderly farewell and moved up the road to the library.
Cadderly
watched them, then looked up to his open window. Percival sat on the sill,
determinedly licking the remains of his cacasa-nut and butter lunch from his
tiny paws.
* * * *
*
A tiny
drop slipped off the end of the coil, touching a saturated cloth that led down
into a small beaker. Cadderly shook his head and put a hand on the spigot
controlling the flow.
"Remove
your hand from that!" cried the frantic alchemist from a workbench across
his shop. He jumped up and stormed over to the too-curious young priest.
"It
is terribly slow," Cadderly remarked.
"It
has to be," Vicero Belago explained for perhaps the hundredth time.
"You are no fool, Cadderly. You know better than to be impatient. This is
Oil of Impact, remember? A most volatile substance. A stronger drip could cause
a cataclysm in a shop so filled with unstable potions!"
Cadderly
sighed and accepted the scolding with a conceding nod. "How much do you
have for me?" he asked, reaching into one of the many pouches on his belt
and producing a tiny vial.
"You
are so very impatient," remarked Belago, but Cadderly knew that he was not
really angry. Cadderly was a prime customer and had many times provided
important translations of archaic alchemical notes. "Only what is in the
beaker, I fear. I had to wait for some ingredients-hill giant fingernails and
crushed oxen horn."
Cadderly
gently lifted the soaked cloth and tilted the beaker. It contained just a few
drops, enough to fill only one of his tiny vials. "That makes six,"
he said, using the cloth to coax the liquid into the vial. "Forty-four to
go."
"Are
you confident that you want that many?" Belago asked him, not for the
first time.
"Fifty,"
Cadderly declared.
"The
price ..."
"Will-worth
it!" Cadderly laughed as he secured his vial and skipped out of the shop.
His spirits did not diminish as he moved down the hall to the southern wing of
the third floor and the chambers of Histra, a visiting priestess of Sune,
Goddess of Love.
"Dear
Cadderly," greeted the priestess, who was twenty years Cadderly's senior
but quite alluring. She wore a deep crimson habit, cut low in the front and
high on the sides, revealing most of her curvy figure. Cadderly had to remind
himself to keep his manners proper and his gaze on her eyes.
"Do
come in," Histra purred. She grabbed the front of Cadderly's tunic and
yanked him into the room, pointedly shutting the door behind him.
He
managed to glance away from Histra long enough to see a brightly glowing object
shining through a heavy blanket.
"Is
it finished?" Cadderly asked squeakily. He cleared his throat,
embarrassed.
Histra
ran a finger lightly down his arm and smiled at his involuntary shudder.
"The dweomer is cast," she replied. "All that remains is
payment."
"Two
hundred ... gold pieces," Cadderly
stammered, "as we agreed." He reached for a pouch, but Histra's hand
intercepted his.
"It
was a difficult spell," she said, "a variation of the norm." She
paused and gave a coy smile. "But I do so love variations," Histra
declared teasingly. "The price could be less, you know, for you."
Cadderly
did not doubt that his gulp was heard out in the hallway. He was a disciplined
scholar and had come here for a specific purpose. He had much work to do, but
Histra's allure was undeniable and her fine perfume overpowering. Cadderly
reminded himself to breathe.
"We
could forget the gold payment altogether," Histra offered, her fingers
smoothly tracing the outline of Cadderly's ear. The young scholar wondered if
he might fall over.
In the
end, though, an image of spirited Danica sitting on Histra's back, casually
rubbing the priestess's face across the floor, brought Cadderly under control.
Danica's room was not far away, just across the hall and a few doors down. He
firmly removed Histra's hand from his ear, handed her the pouch as payment, and
scooped up the shrouded, glowing object.
For all
his practicality, though, when Cadderly exited the chambers two hundred gold
pieces poorer, he feared that his face was shining as brightly as the disk
Histra had enchanted for him.
Cadderly
had other business-he always did-but, not wanting to arouse suspicions by
roaming about the library with an eerily glowing pouch, he made straight for
the north wing and his own room. Percival was still on the window sill when he
entered, basking in the late morning sun.
"I
have it!" Cadderly said excitedly, taking out the disk. The room
immediately brightened, as if in full sunlight, and the startled squirrel
darted for the shadows under Cadderly's bed.
Cadderly
didn't take time to reassure Percival. He rushed to his desk and, from the
jumbled and overfilled side drawer, produced a cylinder a foot long and two
inches in diameter. With a slight twist, Cadderly removed the casing from the
back end, revealing a slot just large enough for the disk. He eagerly dropped
the disk in and replaced the casing, shielding the light.
"I
know you are under there," Cadderly teased, and he popped the metal cap
off the front end of the tube, loosing a focused beam of light.
Percival
didn't particularly enjoy the spectacle. He darted back and forth under the bed
and Cadderly, laughing that he had finally gotten the best of the sneaky
squirrel, followed him diligently with the light. This went on for a few
moments, until Percival dashed out from under the bed and hopped out the open
window. The squirrel returned a second later, though, just long enough to
snatch up the cacasa-nut and butter bowl and chatter a few uncomplimentary
remarks to Cadderly.
Still
laughing, the young priest capped his new toy and hung it on his belt, then
moved to his oaken wardrobe. Most of the library's host priests kept their
closets stocked with extra vestments, wanting always to look their best for the
continual stream of visiting scholars. In Cadderly's wardrobe, however, the
packed clothing took up just a small fraction of the space. Piles of notes and
even larger piles of various inventions cluttered the floor, and
custom-designed leather belts and straps took up most of the hanging bar. Also,
hanging inside one of the doors was a large mirror, an extravagance far beyond
the meager purses of most other priests at the library, particularly the
younger, lower-ranking ones such as Cadderly.
Cadderly
took out a wide bandoleer and moved to the bed. The leather shoulder harness
contained fifty specially made darts and, with the vial he had taken from the
alchemist's shop, Cadderly was about to complete the sixth. The darts were
small and narrow and made of iron, except for silver tips, and their centers
were hollowed to the exact size of the vials.
Cadderly
flinched as he eased the vial into the dart, trying to exert enough pressure to
snap it into place without breaking it.
"Oil
of Impact," he reminded himself, conjuring images of blackened fingertips.
The
young scholar breathed easier when the volatile potion was properly set. He
removed his silken cape, meaning to put on the bandoleer and go to the mirror
to see how it fit, as he always did after completing another dart, but a sharp
rap of his door gave him just enough time to place the leather belt behind him
before Headmaster Avery Schell, a rotund and red-faced man, burst in.
"What
are these calls for payment?" the priest cried, waving a stack of
parchments at Cadderly. He began peeling them off and tossing them to the floor
as he read their banners.
"Leatherworker,
silversmith, weaponsmith ... You are squandering
your gold!"
Over
Avery's shoulder, Cadderly noticed the toothy smile of Kierkan Rufo and knew
where the headmaster had gained his information and the fuel for his ire. The
tall and sharp-featured Rufo was only a year older than Cadderly, and the two,
while friends, were principal rivals in their ascent through the ranks of their
order, and possibly in other pursuits as well, considering a few longing stares
Cadderly had seen Rufo toss Danica's way. Getting each other into trouble had
become a game between them, a most tiresome game as far as the headmasters,
particularly the beleaguered Avery, were concerned.
"The
money was well spent. Headmaster," Cadderly began tentatively, well aware
that his and Avery's interpretations of "well spent" differed widely.
"In pursuit of knowledge."
"In
pursuit of toys," Rufo remarked with a snicker from the doorway, and
Cadderly noted the tall man's satisfied expression. Cadderly had earned the
headmaster's highest praise for his work on the lost spellbook, to his rival's
obvious dismay, and Rufo was obviously enjoying bringing Cadderly back down.
"You are too irresponsible to be allowed
to keep such sums!" Avery roared, heaving the rest of the parchments into
the air. "You have not the wisdom "
"I
kept only a portion of the profits," Cadderly reminded him, "and
spent that in accord with Deneir's-"
"No!"
Avery interrupted. "Do not hide behind a name that you obviously do not
understand. Deneir. What do you know of Deneir, young inventor? You have spent
all but your earliest years here in the Edificant Library, but you display so
little understanding of our tenets and mores. Go south to Lantan with your
toys, if that would please you, and play with the priests of Gond!"
"I
do not understand."
"Indeed
you do not," Avery answered, his tone becoming almost resigned. He paused
for a long moment, and Cadderly recognized that he was choosing his words very
carefully.
"We
are a center of learning," the headmaster began. "We impose few
restrictions upon those who wish to come here-even Gondsmen have ventured
through our doors. You have seen them, but have you noticed that they were
never warmly received?"
Cadderly
thought for a moment, then nodded. Indeed, he remembered clearly that Avery had
gone out of his way to keep him from meeting the Gondish priests every time
they visited the library. "You are correct, and I do not understand,"
Cadderly replied. "I should think that priests of Deneir and Gond,
dedicated to knowledge, would act as partners."
Avery
shook Percival head slowly and very determinedly. "There you err," he
said. "We put a condition on knowledge that the Gondsmen do not
follow." He paused and shook his head again, a simple action that stung
Cadderly more than any wild screaming fit Avery had ever launched at him.
"Why
are you here?" Avery asked quietly, in controlled tones. "Have you
ever asked yourself that question? You frustrate me, boy. You are perhaps the
most intelligent person I have ever
known-and I have known quite a few scholars-but you possess the impulses and
emotions of a child. I knew would be like this. When Thobicus said we would
take you in ..." Avery stopped abruptly, as if reconsidering his word;
then finished with a sigh.
It
seemed to Cadderly that the headmaster always stopped short of finishing this
same, beleaguered point about morality stopped short of preaching, as though he
expected Cadderly to come to conclusions of his own. Cadderly was not surprise
a moment later when Avery abruptly changed the subject.
"What
of your duties while you sit here in your 'pursuit of knowledge'?" the
headmaster asked, his voice filling with anger once again. "Did you bother
to light the candles in the study chambers this morning?"
Cadderly
flinched. He knew he had forgotten something. "I did not think so,"
Avery said. "You are a valuable asset t our order, Cadderly, and
undeniably gifted as both a scholar and scribe, but, I warn you, your behavior
is far from accept able." Avery's face flushed bright red as Cadderly,
still no properly sorting through the headmaster's concerns for him met his
unblinking stare.
Cadderly
was almost used to these scoldings; it was Aver] who always came rushing to
investigate Rufo's claims. Cadderly did not think that a bad thing; Avery, for
all his fuming was surely more lenient than some of the other, older, head
masters.
Avery
turned suddenly, nearly knocking Rufo over, and stormed down the hallway,
sweeping the angular man up in his wake.
Cadderly
shrugged and tried to dismiss the whole incident as another of Headmaster
Avery's misplaced explosions. Avery obviously just didn't understand him. The
young priest wasn't overly worried; his scribing skills brought in huge amounts
of money, which he split evenly with the library. Admittedly, he was not the
most dutiful follower of Deneir. He was lax concerning the rituals of his
station and it often got him into trouble. But Cadderly knew that most of the
headmasters understood that Us indiscretions came not from any disrespect for
the order, but simply because he was so busy learning and creating, two very
high priorities in the teachings of Deneir-and two often profitable priorities
for the expensive-to-maintain library. By Cadderly's figuring, the priests of
Deneir, like most religious orders, could find it in their hearts to overlook
minor indiscretions, especially considering the greater gain.
"Oh,
Rufo," Cadderly called, reaching to his belt.
Rufo's
angular face poked back around the jamb of the open door, his little black eyes
sparkling with victorious glee.
"Yes?"
the tall man purred.
"You
won that one"
Rufo's
grin widened.
Cadderly
shone a beam of light in his face, and the stunned Rufo recoiled in terror,
bumping heavily against the wall across the corridor.
"Keep
your eyes open," Cadderly said through a wide smile. "The next attack
is mine." He gave a wink, but Rufo, realizing the relatively inoffensive
nature of Cadderly's newest invention, only sneered back, brushed his matted
black hair aside, and rushed away, his hard black boots clomping on the tiled
floor as loudly as a shoed horse on cobblestones.
* * * *
*
The
three druids were granted a room in a remote corner of the fourth floor, far
from the bustle of the library, as Arcite had requested. They settled in
easily, not having much gear, and Arcite suggested they set off at once to
study the newly found moss tome.
"I
shall remain behind," Newander replied. "It was a long road, and I am
truly weary. I would be no help to you with my eyes falling closed."
"As
you wish," Arcite said. "We shall not be gone too long.
Perhaps you can go down and pick up on the
work when we have ended."
Newander
moved to the room's window when his friends had gone and stared out across the
majestic Snowflake Mountains. He had been to the Edificant Library only once
before, when he had first met Cadderly. Newander had been but a young man then,
about the same age as Cadderly was now, and the library, with its bustle of
humanity, crafted items, and penned tomes, had affected him deeply. Before he
had come, Newander had known only the quiet woodlands, where the animals ruled
and men were few.
After
he had left, Newander had questioned his calling. He preferred the woodlands,
that much he knew, but he could not deny the attraction he felt for
civilization, the curiosity about advances in architecture and knowledge.
Newander
had remained a druid, though, a servant of Silvanus, the Oak Father, and had
done well in his studies. The natural order was of primary importance, by his
sincere measure, but still ...
It was
not without concern that Newander had returned to the Edificant Library. He
looked out at majestic mountains and wished he were out there, where the world
was simple and safe.
From a
distance, the rocky spur at the northeastern edge of the Snowflake Mountains
seemed quite unremarkable: piles of strewn boulders covering tightly packed
slopes of smaller stones. But so, too, to those who did not know better, might
a wolverine seem an innocuous thing. A dozen separate tunnels led under that
rocky slope, and each of them promised only death to wayward adventurers
seeking shelter from the night. This particular mountain spur, which was far
from natural, housed Castle Trinity, a castle-in-mountain's-clothing, a
fortress for an evil brotherhood determined to gain in power. Wary must
wanderers be in the Realms, for civilization often ends at a duty wall.
"Will
it work?" Aballister whispered nervously, tentatively fingering the
precious parchment. Rationally, he held faith in the recipe-Talona had led him
to it-but after so much pain and trouble, and with the moment of victory so
dose at hand, he could not prevent a bit of apprehension. He looked up from the
scroll and out a small window in the fortified complex. The
Shining Plains lay flat and dark to the east,
and the setting sun lit reflected fires on the Snowflake Mountains' snow-capped
peaks to the west.
The
small imp folded his leathery wings around in front of himself and crossed
Percival arms over them, impatiently tapping one clawed foot. "Quiesta
bene tellemara," he mumbled under his breath.
"What
was that?" Aballister replied, turning sharply and cocking one thin
eyebrow at his often impertinent familiar. "Did you say something,
Druzil?"
"It
will work, I said. It will work," Druzil lied in his raspy, breathless
voice. "Would you doubt the Lady Talona? Would you doubt her wisdom in
bringing us together?"
Aballister
muttered suspiciously, accepting the suspected insult as an unfortunate but
unavoidable consequence of having so wise and wicked a familiar. The lean
wizard knew that Druzil's translation was less than accurate, and that 'quiesta
bene tellemara' was undoubtedly something uncomplimentary. He didn't doubt
Druzil's appraisal of the powerful potion, though, and that somehow unnerved
him most of all. If Druzil's claims for the chaos curse proved true, Aballister
and his evil companions would soon realize more power than even the ambitious
wizard had ever hoped for. For many years Castle Trinity had aspired to conquer
the Snowflake Mountain region, the elven wood of Shilmista, and the human
settlement of Carradoon. Now, with the chaos curse, that process might soon
begin.
Aballister
looked beside the small window to the golden brazier, supported by a tripod,
that always burned in his room. This was his gate to the lower planes, the same
gate that had delivered Druzil. The wizard remembered that time vividly, a day
of tingling anticipation. The avatar of the goddess Talona had instructed him
to use his powers of sorcery and had given him Druzil's name, promising him
that the imp would deliver a most delicious recipe for entropy. Little did he
know then that the imp's precious scheme would involve two years of pains
taking and costly effort, tax the wizard to the limits of his endurance, and
destroy so many others in the process.
Druzil's
recipe, the chaos curse, was worth it, Aballister decided. He had taken its
creation as Percival personal quest for Talona, as the great task of his life,
and as the gift to his goddess that would elevate him above her priests.
The
interplanar gate was closed now; Aballister had powders that could open and
shut it as readily as if he were turning a knob. The powders sat in small,
carefully marked pouches, half for opening, half for closing, lined up
alternately on a nearby table. Only Druzil knew about them besides Aballister,
and the imp had never gone against the wizard's demands and tampered with the
gate. Druzil could be impertinent and was often I a tremendous nuisance, but he
was reliable enough concerning important matters.
Aballister
continued his scan and saw Us reflection in a mirror across the room. Once he
had been a handsome man, with inquisitive eyes and a bright smile. The change
had been dramatic. Aballister was hollowed and worn now, all the dabbling in dark
magic, worshiping a demanding goddess, and controlling chaotic creatures such
as Druzil having taken their toll. Many years before, the wizard had given up
everything-his family and friends, and all the joys he once had held dear-in
his hunger for knowledge and power, and that obsession had - only multiplied
when he had met Talona.
More
than once, though, both before and after that meeting, Aballister had wondered
if it had been worth it. Druzil offered him the attainment of Percival lifelong
quest, power beyond his grandest imaginings, but the reality hadn't lived up to
Aballister's expectations. At this point in Percival wretched life, the power
seemed as hollow as Us own face.
"But
these ingredients!" Aballister went on, trying, perhaps hoping, that he
could find a weakness in the imp's seemingly solid designs. "Eyes of an
umber hulk? Blood of a druid? And what is the purpose of this, tentacles of a
displacer beast?"
"Chaos curse," Druzil replied, as
if the words alone shout dispell the wizard's doubts. "It is a mighty
potion you plan to brew, my master." Druzil's toothy smile sent a shudder
of revulsion along Aballister's backbone. The wizard had never be come overly
comfortable around the cruel imp.
"Del
quimera cas dempa," Druzil said through Percival long and pointy teeth.
"A powerful potion indeed!" he translated falsely. In truth, Druzil
had said, "Even considering your limitations," but Aballister didn't
need to know that.
"Yes,"
Aballister muttered again, tapping a bony finger on the end of his hawkish
nose. "I really must take the time to learn your language, my dear
Druzil."
"Yes,"
Druzil echoed, wiggling his elongated ears. "lye quiesta pas
tellemara," he said, which meant, "If you weren't so stupid."
Druzil dropped into a low bow to cover his deceptions, but the act only
convinced Aballister further that the imp was making fun of him.
"The
expense of these ingredients has been considerable," Aballister said,
getting back to the subject,
"And
the brewing is not exact," added Druzil with obvious sarcasm. "And we
could find, my master, a hundred more! problems if we searched, but the gains,
I remind you. The gains! Your brotherhood is not so strong, not so. It shan't
survive, I say! Not without the brew."
"God-stuff?"
mused Aballister.
"Call
it so," replied Druzil. "Since it was Talona who led you to it, that
her designs be furthered, perhaps it truly is. A fitting title, for the sake of
Barjin and his wretched priests. They will be more devout and attentive if they
understand that they are fabricating a true agent of Talona, a power in itself
to lavish their worship upon, and their devotion will help keep ore-faced
Ragnor and his brutish warriors in line."
Aballister
laughed aloud as he thought of the three clerics, the second order of the evil
triumvirate, kneeling and praying before a simple magical device.
"Name
it Tuanta Miancay, the Fatal Horror," Druzil offered, his snickers purely
sarcastic. "Barjin will like that." Druzil contemplated the
suggestion for a moment, then added, "No, not the Fatal Horror. Tuanta
QUIRO Miancay, the Most Fatal Horror."
Aballister's
laughter trebled, with just a hint of uneasiness in it. "Most Fatal
Horror" was a tide associated with Talona's highest-ranking and most
devout priests-Barjin, Castle Trinity's clerical leader, had not yet attained
that honor, being referred to only as a Most Debilitating Holiness. That this
chaos curse would outstrip him in tide would sting the arrogant cleric, and
Aballister would enjoy that spectacle. Barjin and his band had been at the
castle for only a year. The priest had traveled all the way from Damara,
homeless and broken and with no god to all his own since a new order of paladin
kings had banished his vile deity back to the lower planes.
Like Aballister, Barjin claimed to have
encountered the avatar of Talona and that it was I she who had shown him the
way to Castle Trinity. Barjin's dynamism and powers were considerable, and his
followers had carried uncounted treasures along with them on their journey.
When they first had arrived, the ruling triumvirate, particularly Aballister,
had welcomed them with open arms, drinking it grand that Talona had brought
together so powerful a union, a marriage that would strengthen the castle and
provide the resources to complete Druzil's recipe. Now, months later,
Aballister had begun to foster reservations about the union, particularly about
the priest. Barjin was a charismatic man, something frowned upon in an order
dedicated to disease and poison. Many of Talona's priests scarred themselves or
covered their skin with grotesque tattoos. Barjin had done none of that, had
sacrificed nothing to his new goddess, but, because of his wealth and his
uncanny persuasive powers, he quickly had risen to the leadership of the
castle's clerics.
Aballister
had allowed the ascent, thinking it Talona's will, and had gone out of his way
to appease Barjin-in retrospect, he was not so certain of his choice. Now,
however, he needed Barjin's support to
hold Castle Trinity together, and rjin's riches to fund the continuing creation
of the chaos curse.
"I
must see about the brewing of our ingredients for the god-stuff," the
wizard said with that thought in mind. "When we find a quiet time, though,
Druzil, I would like to learn a bit of that full-flavored language you so often
toss about."
"As
you please, my master," replied the imp, bowing as Aballister left the
small room and closed the door behind him.
Druzil
spoke his next words in his private tongue, the language of the lower planes,
fearing that Aballister might be listening at the door. "Quiesta bene
tellemara, Aballister!" The mischievous imp couldn't help himself as he
whispered, "But you are too stupid," aloud, for no better reason than
to hear the words spoken in both tongues.
For all
of the insults he so casually threw his master's way, though, Druzil
appreciated the wizard. Aballister was marvelously intelligent for a human, and
the most powerful of his or her of three, and by Druzil's estimation those
three wizards were the strongest leg of the triumvirate. Aballister would
complete the cursing potion and supply the device to deliver it, and for that,
Druzil, who had craved this day for decades, would be undyingly grateful.
Druzil was smarter than most imps, smarter than most people, and when he had
come upon the ancient recipe in an obscure manuscript a century before, he
wisely had kept it hidden from his former master, another human. That wizard
hadn't the resources or the wisdom to carry through the plan and properly
spread the cause of chaos, but Aballister did.
* * * *
*
Aballister
felt a mixture of hope and trepidation as he stared hard at the reddish glow
emanating from within the dear bottle. This was the first test of the chaos
curse, and all of the wizard's expectations were tempered by the huge expense
of putting this small amount together.
"One more ingredient," whispered
the anxious imp, sharing none of Percival master's doubts. "Add the yote,
then we may release the smoke."
"It
is not to be imbibed?" Aballister asked.
Druzil
paled noticeably. "No, master, not that," he rasped. "The
consequences are too grave. Too grave!"
Aballister
spent a long moment studying the imp. In the two years Druzil had been beside
him, he could not recall ever seeing the imp so badly shaken. The wizard walked
across the room to a cabinet and produced a second bottle, smaller than the
plain one holding the potion, but intricately decorated with countless magical
runes. When Aballister pulled off the stopper, a steady stream of smoke issued
forth.
"It
is ever-smoking," the wizard explained. "A minor item of magical
..."
"I
know," Druzil interrupted. "And I have already come to know that the
flask will mate correctly with our potion."
Aballister
started to ask how Druzil could possibly know that, how Druzil could even know
about his ever-smoking bottle, but he held his questions, remembering that the
mischievous imp had contacts on other planes that could answer many things.
"Could
you create more of those?" Druzil asked, indicating the wondrous bottle.
Aballister
gritted his teeth at yet another added expense, and his expression alone
answered the question.
"The
chaos curse is best served in mist, and with its magical properties, the bottle
will continue to spew it forth for many years, though its range will be
limited," Druzil explained. "Another container will be necessary if
we mean to spread the intoxicant properly."
"Intoxicant?"
Aballister balked, on the verge of rage. Druzil gave a quick flap of his
leathery wings, putting him farther across the room from Aballister-not that
distance mattered much where the powerful wizard was concerned.
"Intoxicant?"
Aballister said again. "My dear, dear Druzil, do you mean to tell me that
we have spent a fortune in gold, that I have groveled before Barjin and those
utterly wretched priests, just to mix a batch of elvish wine?"
"Bene
tellemara," came the imp's exasperated reply. "You still do not
understand what we have created? Elvish wine?"
"Dwarvish
mead, then?" Aballister snarled sarcastically. He took up his staff and
advanced a threatening step.
"You
do not understand what will happen when it is loosed," Druzil barked
derisively.
"Do
tell me."
Druzil
snapped his wings over his face, then back behind him again, a movement that
plainly revealed his frustration. "It will invade the hearts of our
targets," the imp explained, "and exaggerate their desires. Simple
impulses will become god-given commands. None will be affected in quite the
same way, nor will the effects remain consistent to any one victim. Purely
chaotic! Those affected will ..."
Aballister
raised a hand to stop him, needing no further explanation.
"I
have given you power beyond your greatest hopes!" the imp growled
forcefully. "Have you forgotten Talona's promise?"
"The
avatar only suggested that I summon you," Aballister countered, "and
only hinted that you might possess something of value."
"You
cannot begin to understand the potency of the chaos curse," Druzil replied
smugly. "All the races of the region will be yours to control when their
own inner controls have been destroyed. Chaos is a beautiful thing, mortal
master, a force of destruction and conquest, the ultimate disease, the Most
Fatal Horror. Orchestrating chaos brings power to he who remains beyond its
crippling grip!"
Aballister
leaned on his staff and looked away. He had to believe Druzil, and yet he
feared to believe. He had given so much to this unknown recipe.
"You
must learn," the imp said, seeing that Aballister was not impressed.
"If we are to succeed, then you must believe." He folded his leathery
wings over his head for a moment, burying himself in thought. "That young
fighter, the arrogant one?" he asked suddenly.
"Haverly,"
Aballister answered.
"He
thinks himself Ragnor's better," Druzil said, a wicked, toothy smile
spreading over his face. "He desires Ragnor's death so that he might
assume captainship of the fighters."
Aballister
did not argue. On several occasions, young Haverly, drunken with ale, had
indicated those very desires, though he had never gone so far as to threaten
the ogrillon. Even arrogant Haverly was not that stupid.
"Call
him to us," Druzil begged. "Let him complete our test. Tell him that
this potion could strengthen his position in the triumvirate. Tell him that it
could make him even stronger than Ragnor."
Aballister
stood quietly for a few moments to consider his options. Barjin had expressed
grave doubts about the whole project, despite Aballister's claims that it would
serve Talona beyond anything else in all the world. The priest had only funded
Aballister's treasure hunt on the wizard's promise, made before a dozen
witnesses, that every copper piece would be repaid if the priest was not
overjoyed with the results. Barjin had lost much in Percival flight from the
northern kingdom of Damara: Percival prestige, Percival army, and many valuable
and powerful items, some enchanted. His retained wealth alone had played the
major role in preserving a measure of his former power. Now, as the weeks
dragged on with rising expenses and no measurable results, Barjin grew
increasingly impatient.
"I
will get Haverly at once," Aballister replied, suddenly intrigued. Neither
the wizard nor Barjin held any love for either Ragnor, whom they considered too
dangerous to be trusted, or Haverly, whom they considered too foolish, and any
havoc that the test wreaked on that pair could help to diminish Barjin's
doubts.
Besides,
Aballister thought, it might be fun to watch.
* * * *
*
Druzil
sat motionless on Aballister's great desk, watching the events across the room
with great interest. The imp wished he could play a larger role in this part of
the test, but only the other wizards knew of his position as Aballister's
familiar, or that he was alive at all. The fighters of the triumvirate, even
the clerics, thought the imp merely a garish statue, for on the few occasions
that any of them had entered Aballister's private quarters, Druzil had sat
perfectly motionless on the desk.
"Bend
low over the beaker as you add the final drop," Aballister bade Haverly,
looking back to Druzil for confirmation. The imp nodded imperceptibly and
flared his nostrils in anticipation.
"That
is correct," Aballister said to Haverly. "Breathe deeply as you
pour."
Haverly
stood straight and cast a suspicious gaze at the wizard. He obviously didn't
trust Aballister-certainly the wizard had shown him no friendship before now.
"I have great plans," he said threateningly, "and being turned
into a newt or some other strange creature is not part of them."
"You
doubt?" Aballister roared suddenly, knowing that he must scare off the
young fighter's doubts without hesitation. "Then go away! Anyone can
complete the brewing. I thought that one as ambitious as you ..."
"Enough,"
Haverly interrupted, and Aballister knew his words had bit home. Haverly's
suspicion was no match for his hunger for power.
"I
will trust you, wizard, though you have never given me cause to trust
you," Haverly finished.
"Nor
have I ever given you cause not to trust me," Aballister reminded him.
Haverly
stared a moment longer at Aballister, his grimace not softening, then bent low
over the beaker and poured the final drops. As soon as the liquids touched, the
red-glowing elixir belched a puff of
red smoke right in Haverly's face. The fighter jumped back, his hand going
straight to his sword.
"What
have you done to me?" he demanded.
"Done?"
Aballister echoed innocently. "Nothing. The smoke was harmless enough, if
a bit startling."
Haverly
took a moment to inspect himself to be sure that he had suffered no ill
effects, then he relaxed and nodded at the wizard. "What will happen
next?" he asked sharply. "Where is the power you promised me?"
"In
time, dear Haverly, in time," replied Aballister. "The brewing of the
elixir is only the first process."
"How
long?" demanded the eager fighter.
"I
could have invited Ragnor instead of you," Aballister pointedly reminded
him.
Haverly's
transformation at the mention of Ragnor forced the wizard back several steps.
The young fighter's eyes widened grotesquely; he bit Percival lip so hard that
blood dripped down Percival chin. "Ragnor!" he growled through
gritted teeth. "Ragnor the imposter! Ragnor the pretender! You would not
invite him, for I am his better!"
"Of
course you are, dear Haverly," the wizard cooed, trying to soothe the
wild-eyed man, recognizing that Haverly was on the verge of explosion.
"That is why ..." Aballister
never finished, for Haverly, muttering under his breath, drew his sword and
charged out of the room, nearly destroying the door as he passed. Aballister
stared into the hallway, blinking in disbelief.
"Intoxicant?"
came a sarcastic query from across the room.
Drawn
away by the screams of "Ragnor!" Aballister didn't bother to answer
the imp. The wizard rushed out, not wanting to miss the coming spectacle, and
soon found Us two colleagues as they made their way through the halls.
"It
is Haverly, the young fighter," said Dorigen, the only female wizard in
the castle. Aballister's evil smile stopped her and her companion in their
tracks.
"The
potion is completed?" Dorigen asked hopefully, her amber eyes sparkling as
she tossed her long black hair back over her shoulder.
"Chaos
curse," Aballister confirmed as he led them on. When they arrived at the
complex's large dining hall, they found that the fighting had already begun.
Several tables had been flung about and a hundred startled men and ores, and
even a few giants, lined the room's perimeter, watching in amazement. Ragnor
and Haverly stood facing each other in the center of the room, swords drawn.
"The
fighters will need a new third in their ruling council," Dorigen remarked.
"Surely either Ragnor or Haverly will fall this day, leaving only
two."
"Ragnor!"
Haverly proclaimed loudly. "Today I take my place as leader of the fighters!"
The
other warrior, a powerfully built ogrillon, having ancestors both ogre and ore,
and carrying the scars of a thousand battles, hardly seemed impressed.
"Today you take your place among your ancestors," he chided.
Haverly
charged, his foolishly straightforward attack costing him so deep a gash on one
shoulder that his arm was nearly severed. The crazed fighter didn't even
grimace, didn't even notice the wound or the pain.
Though
plainly amazed that the vicious wound had not slowed his opponent, Ragnor still
managed to deflect Haverly's sword and get in close to the man. He caught
Haverly's sword arm with his free hand and tried to position his own weapon for
a strike.
Gasps
of astonishment arose throughout the gathering as Haverly somehow managed to
lift his brutally torn arm and similarly block Ragnor's strike.
Haverly
was almost as tall as Ragnor, but many pounds lighter and not nearly as strong.
Still, and despite the wicked wound, he held Ragnor at bay for many moments.
"You
are stronger than you seem," Ragnor admitted, somewhat impressed, but
showing no concern; on the few occasions that his incredible strength had
failed him, the ogrillon had always found a way to improvise. He pressed a
disguised button on his sword hilt, and a second blade, a long, slender dirk,
appeared, protruding straight down from the sword hilt, right in line with
Haverly's unhelmeted head.
Haverly
was too engrossed to even notice. "Ragnor!" he screamed again,
hysterically, his face contorted. He slammed his forehead into Ragnor's face,
squashing the ogrillon's nose. Haverly's head came crashing in again, but
Ragnor managed to ignore the pain and keep his concentration on the more lethal
attack.
Haverly's
head came back in line a third time. Ragnor, tasting his own blood, savagely
twisted his sword arm free and plunged straight down, impaling the dirk deeply
into Haverly's skull.
* * * *
*
The
three priests of the ruling triumvirate entered the room then, led by Barjin,
who was obviously not pleased by the combat.
"What
is the meaning of this?" he demanded of Aballister, understanding that the
wizard had played a role here.
"A
matter for the fighters to explain, it would seem," Aballister replied
with a shrug. Seeing that the priest was about to intervene in the continuing
battle, Aballister bent over and whispered, "The chaos curse," in
Barjin's ear.
Barjin's
face brightened immediately and he watched the bloody battle with sudden
enthusiasm.
* * * *
*
Ragnor
could hardly believe that Haverly still struggled. His foot-long dirk was
bloodied right to the pommel, but his opponent stubbornly backed away,
thrashing to free himself of the blade.
Ragnor
let him go, thinking Haverly in his death throes. But, to the continuing gasps
of the onlookers-Barjin's heard most loudly-Haverly did not topple.
"Ragnor!"
he growled, shirring badly and spitting thick blood with every syllable. Blood
filled one of his eyes and poured from his head wound, matting his brown hair,
but he raised his sword and stumbled in.
Ragnor,
terrified, struck first, taking advantage of Haverly's partial blindness and
hacking at his already wounded arm. The force of the blow severed the arm
completely, just below the shoulder, and knocked Haverly several feet to the
side.
"Ragnor!"
Haverly sputtered again, barely keeping his balance. Again he came in, and
again Ragnor beat him back, this time slicing through Haverly's exposed ribs,
digging at his heart and lungs.
Haverly's
cries became unintelligible wheezes as he continued his advance. Ragnor
frantically rushed out to meet him, locking him in a tight embrace that
rendered both long swords useless. Haverly had no defenses against Ragnor's
free hand, now holding a dirk, and the weapon dug repeatedly, viciously, at his
back.
Still,
many minutes passed before Haverly finally tumbled dead to the floor.
"A
worthy adversary," one bold ore remarked, coming over to inspect the body.
Covered
in Haverly's blood, and with his own nose broken, Ragnor was in no mood to hear
any praises for Haverly. "A stubborn fool!" he corrected, and he
lopped off the ore's head with a single strike.
Barjin
nodded at Aballister. "Talona watches with pleasure. Perhaps your chaos
curse will prove worth the expense."
"Chaos
curse?" Aballister replied as though a notion had struck him. "That
is not a fitting title for such a powerful agent of Talona. Tuanta Miancay,
perhaps ... no, Tuanta QUIRO Miancay."
One of
Barjin's associates, understanding the language and the implications of the
title, gasped aloud. His companions stared at him, and he translated. "The
Most Fatal Horror!"
Barjin
snapped his gaze back on Aballister, realizing the wizard's ploy. Aballister
had played the most important role in the brewing and, with a few simple words,
had ranked the potion above Barjin. Already the other two clerics, fanatic
followers of Talona, were nodding eagerly and whispering their praises for
Aballister's creation.
"Tuanta
Quiro Miancay" the cornered priest echoed, forcing a smile. "Yes,
that will do properly."
Danica
The
obese wrestler rubbed a pudgy hand over his newest bruise, trying to ignore the
growing taunts of his colleagues.
"I
have been too relaxed against you," he said to the young woman, "my
being thrice your weight and you being a girl."
Danica
brushed her hair out of her almond-shaped brown eyes and tried to hide her
smile. She didn't want to humiliate the proud cleric, a disciple of Oghma. She
knew his boasts were ridiculous. He had fought with all his fury, but it hadn't
done him any good.
Danica
looked like a wisp of a thing, barely five feet tall, with a floppy mop of
curly strawberry-blond hair hanging just below her shoulders and a smile to
steal a paladin's heart. Those who looked more closely found much more than
"girlish" dressing, though. Years of meditation and training had
honed Danica's reflexes and muscles to a fine fighting edge, as the clerics of
Oghma, fancying themselves great wrestlers in the image of their god figure,
were painfully discovering one after another.
Every time Danica needed information in the
great Edificant Library, she found it offered only in exchange for a wrestling
match. For the gain of a single scroll penned by a long-dead monk, Danica now
found herself faced off against this latest adversary, a sweaty and smelly behemoth.
She didn't really mind the play; she knew she could defeat tins one as easily
as she had dispatched all the others.
The fat
man straightened his black-and-gold vest, lowered his round head, and charged.
Danica
waited until he was right in front of her, and to the onlookers it looked as if
the woman would be buried beneath mounds of flesh. At the last moment, she
dipped her head under the fat man's lunging arm, caught his hand, and casually
stepped behind him as he lumbered past. A subtle twist of her wrist stopped him
dead in his tracks and, before he even realized what was happening, Danica
kicked the back of both his knees, dropping him to a kneel.
While
the big man went down, his arm, bent backward and held firmly in Danica's
amazingly strong grasp, did not. Sympathetic groans and derisive laughter
erupted from those gathered to watch.
"Eastern
comer!" the big man cried. "Third row, third shelf from the top in a
silver tube!"
"My
thanks," Danica said, releasing her hold. She looked around, flashing that
innocent smile. "Perhaps the next time I require information, you can
fight me two against one."
The
clerics of Oghma, fearing that their god was not pleased, grumbled and turned
away.
Danica
offered her hand to the downed priest, but he proudly refused. He struggled to
his feet, nearly falling again for lack of breath, and rushed to catch up with
the others. Danica shook her head helplessly and retrieved her two daggers from
a nearby bench. She took a moment to examine them, as she always did before
putting them back into their respective boot sheaths. One had a hilt of gold,
twisted into a tiger's head, while the other had one of silver, bearing an
image of a dragon. Both sported transparent crystal blades and were enhanced by
a wizard's spell to give them the strength of steel and perfect balance. They
had been a very valuable and treasured gift from Danica's master, a man whom
Danica dearly missed. She had been with Master Turkel since her parents had
died, and the wizened old man had become all the family she had. Danica thought
of him as she resheathed the weapons, vowing for the millionth time to visit
him when she had completed her studies.
Danica
Maupoissant had been raised amid the bustle of the Westgate marketplace, five
hundred miles to the northeast of the Edificant Library, on the neck between
the Lake of Dragons and the Sea of Fallen Stars. Her father, Pavel, was a
craftsman, reputably the finest wagonmaker in the region, who, like many people
of Westgate, possessed a stubborn and fierce independence and no small amount
of pride.
Theirs
was a life of simple pleasures and unconditional love. Danica was twelve when
she left her parents to serve as an apprentice to the aged, white-bearded
potter named Turkel Bastan. Only months later did Danica come to understand her
parents' reasoning in sending her to him: they had foreseen what was to come.
She
spent a year shuffling back and forth across the city, splitting her time
between her extensive duties with Master Turkel and those rare opportunities
she found to go home. Then, suddenly, there was nowhere to go. The raid had
come in the dark of night, and when the assassins had gone, so, too, were
Danica's parents, the house she had grown up in, and the wagon shop that had
been her father's lifelong toil.
Master
Turkel showed little emotion when he told Danica the terrible news, but the
young girl heard him crying later, in the solitude of his small room. Only then
did Danica come to realize that Turkel and her parents had orchestrated her apprenticeship.
She had assumed it an accidental thing, and had feared that perhaps her parents
had simply shuffled her away for their own convenience. She knew that Turkel
was from the far-off eastern land of Tabot, the mountainous region of some of
her mother's ancestors, and she wondered if Turkel might be a distant relative.
Whatever their relationship, Danica's apprenticeship with the master soon had
taken on a different light. He had helped her through her grieving, then had
begun her true instruction, lessons that had little to do with making pottery.
Turkel
was a Tabotan monk, a disciple of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn, whose religion
combined mental discipline with physical training to achieve harmony of the
soul. Danica guessed Turkel to be no less than eighty years old, but he could
move with the grace of a hunting cat and strike with his bare hands with the
force of iron weapons. His displays more than amazed Danica; they consumed her.
Quiet and unassuming, Turkel was as peaceful and contented a man as Danica had
ever known, yet underneath that outward guise was a fighting tiger that could
be brought roaring forth in times of need.
So,
too, grew the tiger in Danica. She learned and practiced, nothing else mattered
to her. She used her constant work as a litany against her memories, a
barricade against the pain with which she could not yet come to terms. Turkel
understood, Danica later realized, and he chose carefully when he would tell
her more of her parents' demise.
The
craftsmen and merchants of Westgate, along with, or perhaps because of, their
fierce independence, were often bitter rivals, and Pavel had not escaped this
fact of Westgate life. There were several other wagonmakers- Turkel would not
tell Danica their names-who were jealous of Pavel's continuing prosperity. They
went to Pavel on a few occasions, threatening him with severe consequences if
he would not share with them his long backlog of orders.
"If
they had come as friends and fellow craftsmen, Pavel would have shared the
wealth," Turkel had said, as though he and Danica's father had been much
more than the slight acquaintances they pretended to be in public. "But
your father was a proud man. He would not give in to threats, no matter how
real the danger behind them."
Danica
had never pressed Turkel for the identity of the men who had killed her
parents-or, rather, had hired the dreaded Night Masks, the usual means of
assassination in Westgate, and to this day, she did not know who they were. She
trusted that the master would tell her when he felt she was prepared to know,
prepared to take revenge, if that was her choice, or when he believed she was
willing to let go of the past and build on the future. Turkel had always
indicated that to be his preference.
The
image of the aged master came clearly to Danica's mind as she stood there,
holding the magnificent daggers. "You have outgrown me," he had said
to her, and there was no remorse, only pride, in his tone. "Your skills
surpass my own in so many areas."
Danica
remembered vividly that she had thought the time of revelation at hand, that
Turkel would tell her the names of the conspirators who had killed her parents
and tell her to go out and seek revenge.
Turkel
had other ideas.
"There
remains only one master who can continue to instruct you," Turkel had
said, and as soon as he mentioned the Edificant Library, Danica knew what was
to come. The library was home to many of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn's rare and
priceless scrolls; Turkel wanted her to learn directly from the records of the
long-dead grandmaster. It was then that Turkel had given her the two
magnificent daggers.
So she
had left Westgate, barely more than a child, to build on her future, to attain
new heights of self-discipline. Once again Master Turkel had shown his love and
respect for her, placing her needs above his own obvious despair at her
departure.
Danica
believed that she had accomplished much in her first year at the library, both
in her studies and in her understanding of other people, of the world that
suddenly seemed so very large. She thought it ironic that her education of the
wide world would come in a place of almost monastic seclusion, but she couldn't
deny that her views had matured considerably in the year she had spent at the
library. Before she had lived in the private desire for revenge; now Westgate
and the hired assassins seemed so very far away, and so many other, more
positive, opportunities were opened to her.
She
dismissed those dark memories now, left them with a final image of her father's
calm smile, her mother's almond eyes, and the many wrinkles of Master Turkel's
wizened old face. Then even those pleasing images dissipated, buried beneath
Danica's many responsibilities to her craft.
The
library was a massive room supported by dozens and dozens of arched pillars,
which were even more confusing because of the thousands of distracting
bas-reliefs carved into each one. It took Danica many minutes to determine
which was the eastern comer. When she finally got there, moving down a narrow
isle of tightly packed books, she found someone waiting for her.
Cadderly
couldn't hide his smile; he never could when he looked upon Danica, since the
very first time he had seen her. He knew she had come from Westgate, several
hundred miles to the northeast. That alone made her worldly by his standards,
and there were so many other things about her that piqued his imagination.
Although Danica's features and mannerisms were mostly Western and not so
different from the norm in the central realms, the shape of her eyes revealed
some ancestry in the far and exotic East.
Cadderly
often wondered if that was what had initially attracted him to Danica. Those
almond eyes had promised adventure to him, and he was a man sorely in need of
adventure. He had passed his twenty-first birthday and had been off the grounds
of the Edificant Library only a few dozen times-and on those occasions, he had
always been accompanied by at least one of the headmasters, usually Avery, and
several other priests. Sometimes Cadderly thought himself pitifully bereft of
any real experiences. To him, adventures and battles were events to be read
about. He had never even seen a living orc, or monster of any kind.
Enter
mysterious Danica and those alluring promises.
"It
took you long enough," Cadderly remarked slyly.
"I
have been at the library just a year," Danica retorted, "but you have
lived here since before your fifth birthday."
"I
had the library figured out in a week, even at that age," Cadderly assured
her with a snap of his fingers. He fell into step beside her as she walked
briskly toward the comer.
Danica
glanced up at him, then bit back her sarcastic reply, not certain if the
amazing Cadderly was teasing her or not.
"So
you are fighting the big ones now?" Cadderly asked. "Should I be
concerned?"
Danica
stopped suddenly, pulled Cadderly's face down to her own, and kissed him
eagerly. She moved back from him just a few inches, her almond eyes, striking
and exotic, boring into him.
Cadderly
silently thanked Deneir that neither he nor Danica were of a celibate order,
but, as always when they kissed, the contact made both of them nervous.
"Fighting excites you," Cadderly remarked coyly, stealing the romance
and relieving the tension. "Now I am concerned."
Danica
pushed him back but did not let go of his tunic.
"You
should be careful, you know," Cadderly went on, suddenly serious. "If
any of the headmasters caught you wrestling
..."
"The
proud young loremasters do not leave me much choice," Danica replied,
casually tossing her hair and pulling it back from her face. She hadn't really
worked up much of a sweat against her latest opponent. "In this maze you
call a library, I could not find half of what I need in a hundred years."
She rolled her eyes about to emphasize the vastness of the pillared room.
"Not
a problem," Cadderly assured her. "I had the library figured out
..."
"When
you were five!" Danica finished for him and she pulled him close again. This time Cadderly decided that her
attention might bring some added benefits. He prudently moved around to
Danica's right side-he scribed left-handed, and the last time he had attempted
tins with his left hand, he had not been able to work for several days.
Cadderly had been thrilled by what Danica called her "Withering
Touch" for many months, considering it the most effective nonlethal attack
form he had ever witnessed. He had begged Danica to teach it to him, but the
skilled monk carefully guarded her fighting secrets, explaining to Cadderly
that her fighting methods were but a small part of her religion, as much a
discipline of the mind as of the body. She would not allow others to copy
simple techniques without first achieving the mental preparation and
philosophical attitudes that accompanied them.
In the
middle of the kiss, Cadderly rubbed his hand across Danica's belly, under the
bottom of her short vest. As always, the young priest was amazed by the hard,
rolling muscles of her stomach. A moment later, Cadderly started moving his
hand slowly upward.
Danica's
reaction came in the blink of an eye. Her hand, one finger extended, snapped
out across Cadderly's chest and drove into his shoulder.
Under
the vest, Cadderly's hand stopped immediately, then fell lifeless to hang by
his side. He grimaced for a moment as the burning pain became a general
numbness the length of his arm.
"You
are such a ..." Danica stammered, "a ... a boy!"
At
first, Cadderly thought her anger just the expected reaction to his bold
advance, then Danica stunned him completely. "Can you never forget your
studies?"
"She
knows!" a horrified Cadderly muttered to himself as Danica stormed away.
Expecting the attack, he had carefully watched out of the comer of his eye and
believed he knew precisely where Danica's finger had struck. Until that moment,
he had considered this attempt a success, despite the continuing pain. But now
Danica knew!
The young scholar paused a moment to consider
the implications, then was relieved when he heard Danica's soft laughter from
just beyond the next bookshelf. He took a step toward her, meaning to amend
things, but Danica spun as soon as he rounded the corner, her finger poised to
strike.
"The
touch will work on your head as well," the young woman promised, her light
brown eyes sparkling eagerly.
Cadderly
didn't doubt that for a moment, and he surely didn't want Danica to prove her
words. It always amazed him that Danica, barely half his weight, could so
easily take him down. He looked upon her with sincere admiration, even envy,
for Cadderly dearly wished that he possessed Danica's direction and dedication,
her passion for her studies. While Cadderly went through his life busy but
distracted, Danica's vision of the world remained narrowly focused, based in a
rigid and philosophical religion little-known in the western realms. That passion,
too, enhanced the enchantment Danica had cast over Cadderly. He wanted to open
her mind and her heart and look into both, knowing that only there would he
find answers to fill the missing elements of his own life.
Danica
embodied his dreams and his hopes; he didn't even try to remember how sorely
empty his life had been before he had met her. He backed away slowly, lifting
his palms and holding them open and out wide to show that he wanted no part of
any further displays.
"Stand!"
Danica commanded as sharply as her melodious voice allowed. "Have you
nothing to say to me?"
Cadderly
thought for a moment, wondering what she wanted to hear. "I love
you?" he asked as much as declared.
Danica
nodded and smiled disarmingly, then dropped her hand. Cadderly's gray eyes
returned the smile tenfold and he took a step toward her.
The
dangerous finger shot up and waved about, resembling some hellish viper.
Cadderly
shook his head and ran from the room, pausing only to grab a scrap of parchment
and dip the quill he kept stuck under his hat band into an open inkwell. He had
witnessed the Withering Touch perfectly, and he wanted to sketch the image
while it was fresh in his mind. this time, Danica's laughter was not so soft.
Canticle
"They
are singing to it!" Druzil cried in amazement, not certain of whether that
was a good thing or not. The religious fanatics of Castle Trinity had taken the
potion to heart; even the not-so-faithful, such as Ragnor and, by Aballister's
estimation, Barjin, had been swept up in the zealous flow. "Though not
very well, I fear." The imp put his wings over his ears to lessen the
sound.
Aballister,
too, did not enjoy the discordant wails that resounded throughout the castle
complex with a zeal that walls and doors could not diminish, but he tolerated
the clerics better than his worrisome imp. The wizard, too, was not without his
reservations, though. Ever since the battle in the dining hall four weeks
before, Barjin had forcefully taken the project as his own and had led the
chorus of chants to the Most Fatal Horror.
"Barjin
has the wealth," Druzil reminded the wizard, as though the imp had sensed
Aballister's thoughts.
Aballister
replied with a grim nod. "I fear that my insult has been turned back on
me," he explained, moving slowly to the window and looking out over the
Shining Plains. "By naming the chaos curse the Most Fatal Horror, I sought
to demean Barjin, to weaken Percival position, but he has weathered the torment
and resisted his prideful urging better than I had expected. All the followers
believe his sincerity, to Talona and to the chaos curse." Aballister
sighed. On the one hand, he was disappointed that his ploy had not stung
Barjin, at least not outwardly, but on the other hand, the priest leader,
sincere or not, was surely preparing Castle Trinity for the coming trials and
thus was furthering Talona's will.
"If
the followers believe our mixture is a simple magical concoction, no matter how
potent, they will not so readily give their lives to the cause,"
Aballister reasoned, turning back on Druzil. "There is nothing like
religion to rouse the rabble."
"You
do not believe the elixir is an agent of Talona?" Druzil asked, though he
already knew the answer.
"I
know the difference between a magical concoction and a sentient shield
man," Aballister replied dryly. "The elixir will indeed serve the
Lady of Poison's cause, and so its title is a fitting one."
"Barjin
has put all the forces of Castle Trinity behind him," Druzil quickly
responded, his tone ominous. "Even Ragnor does not dare go against
him."
"Why
would he, or anyone else, want to?" Aballister replied. "The chaos
curse soon will be put to proper use, and Barjin has played a major role in
that."
"At
what price?" the imp demanded. "I gave the recipe for the chaos curse
to you, my master, not the priest. Yet it is the priest who controls its fate
and uses you and the other wizards to serve his own designs "
"We
are a brotherhood, sworn to loyalty."
"You
are a gathering of thieves," Druzil retorted. "Be not so swift in
presuming the existence of honor. If Ragnor did not fear you, and did not see
profit in keeping you, he would cut you down. Barjin-" Druzil rolled his
bulbous eyes "-Barjin cares for nothing except Barjin. Where are his
scars? His tattoos? He does not deserve his title, nor the leadership of the
priests. He falls to his knees for the goddess only because doing so makes
those around him praise him for his holiness. There is nothing religious-"
"Enough,
dear Druzil," soothed the wizard, waving one hand calmly.
"Do
you deny that Barjin controls the chaos curse?" Druzil retorted. "Do
you believe that Barjin would show any loyalty to Aballister if he did not need
Aballister?"
The
wizard walked away from the small window and fell back into his wooden chair,
unable to argue those points. But even if he admitted that he had
miscalculated, he could do little now to stop events from following their
course. Barjin had the elixir and the money, and if Aballister meant to
recapture control of the potion for himself, he might have to fight a war
within the triumvirate. Aballister and his wizard comrades were powerful, but
they were only three. With Barjin whipping the hundreds of Castle Trinity
soldiers into religious fervor, the wizards had become somewhat secluded within
the complex.
"They
have added rituals and conditions," the imp went on, spitting every word
with distaste. "Did you know that Barjin has placed warding glyphs on the
flask, so that it might be opened only by an innocent?"
"That
is a typical priestly ploy," Aballister replied casually, trying to
alleviate Druzil's worries.
"He
does not understand the power under his control," Druzil retorted.
"The chaos curse needs no 'priestly ploys.'"
Aballister
gave an unconcerned shrug, but he, too, had not agreed with Barjin's decision
concerning those glyphs. Barjin thought that allowing an innocent to serve as
an unintentional catalyst was fitting for the agent of the chaotic goddess, but
Aballister feared that the cleric was simply adding conditions to an already
complicated process.
"Barjin
quiesta pas tellemara," Druzil muttered.
Aballister
narrowed his eyes. He had heard that obviously unflattering phrase in many
different contexts these last few weeks, most often aimed at him. He kept his
suspicions to himself, though, realizing that many of Druzil's complaints were
valid.
"Perhaps
it is time for the Most Fatal Horror to go out and perform Talona's will beyond
this pile of rocks," Aballister said. "Perhaps we have spent too long
in preparation."
"Barjin's
power is too consolidated," Druzil said. "Do not underestimate
him."
Aballister
nodded, then rose and walked across the room. "You should not
underestimate," he pointed out to the imp, "the advantages in
convincing people that there is a higher purpose to their actions, a higher
authority guiding their leaders' decisions." The wizard opened the heavy
door, and the unholy canticle drowned out Percival next words. More than
Barjin's handful of clerics were singing; the canticle was a hundred screaming
voices strong, echoing off the stone walls with frantic urgency. Aballister
shook his head in disbelief as he exited.
Druzil
could not deny Barjin's effectiveness in preparing the force for the tasks
ahead, but the imp still held reservations about the Most Fatal Horror and all
the complications that title implied. The imp knew, if the wizard did not, that
Aballister would not have an easy time of walking away with the elixir bottle.
* * * *
*
"More
like this one," Cadderly said to Ivan Bouldershoulder, a square-shouldered
dwarf with a yellow beard hanging low enough to trip him if he didn't watch his
step. The two were beside Cadderly's bed-Cadderly kneeling and Ivan
standing-examining a tapestry depicting the legendary war wherein the elvish
race had been split into surface and drow. Only half unrolled, the huge woven
cloth still covered the bed. "The design is right, but its shaft might be
a little tight for my darts."
Ivan pulled out a small stick, notched at
regular intervals, and took some measurements of the hand-held crossbow
Cadderly had indicated, then of the arm of the drow elf holding it.
"They'll fit," the dwarf replied, confident of his work. He looked
across the room to his brother, Pikel, who busied himself with several models
Cadderly had constructed. "You got the bow?"
Engrossed
in his play, Pikel didn't even hear him. He was older than Ivan by several
years, but he was by far the less serious of the two. They were about the same
size, though Pikel was a bit more round-shouldered, an attribute exaggerated by
his loose-fitting, drooping robes. His beard was green this week, for he had
dyed it in honor of the visiting druids. Pikel liked druids, a fact that made
his brother roll his eyes and blush. It wasn't usual that a dwarf would get on
well with woodland folk, but Pikel was far from usual. Rather than let his
beard hang loose to his toes, as did Ivan, he parted it in the middle and
pulled it back over his huge ears, braiding it together with his hair to hang
halfway down his back. It looked rather silly to Ivan, but Pikel, the library's
cook, thought it practical for keeping his beard out of the soup. Besides,
Pikel didn't wear the boots common to his race; he wore sandals-a gift from the
druids-and his long beard tickled his free-wiggling, gnarly toes.
"Oo
oi," Pikel chuckled, rearranging the models. One was remarkably similar to
the Edificant Library, a squat, square, four-storied structure with rows of
tiny windows. Another model was a displaced wall like those in the library,
supported by huge, heavily blocked arches. It was the third and tallest model
that intrigued Pikel. It, too, was of a wall, but unlike anything the dwarf, no
novice to masonry, had ever seen. The model stood straight to half the dwarfs
four-foot height but was not nearly as wide or bulky as the other, shorter,
wall. Slender and graceful, it was really two structures: the wall and a
supporting pillar, connected by two bridges, one halfway up and the other at
the very top.
Pikel pushed down hard on the model, but,
fragile though it appeared, it did not bend under his considerable strength.
"Oo
oi!" the delighted dwarf squealed.
"The
crossbow?" demanded Ivan, now standing behind Pikel. Pikel fumbled about
the many pockets in his cook's apron, finally handing over a small wooden
coffer.
Pikel
squeaked at Cadderly, pointed to the strange wall, and gave an inquisitive
look.
"Just
something I investigated a few months ago," Cadderly explained. He tried
to sound nonchalant, but a clear trace of excitement rang in his voice. With
all that had been going on lately, he had almost forgotten the models, though
the new design had shown remarkable promise. The Edificant Library was far from
a mundane structure. Elaborate sculptures, enhanced by the ivy, covered its
walls, and some of the most wondrous gargoyles in all the Realms completed its
intricate and effective gutter system. Many of the finest minds in the region
had designed and constructed the place, but whenever Cadderly looked upon it,
all that he could see were its limitations. For all its detail, the library was
square and squat, and its windows were small and unremarkable.
"An
idea for expanding the library," he explained to Pikel. He gathered up a
nearby blanket and slipped it under the model of the library, folding its sides
to resemble the rough surrounding mountain terrain.
Ivan
shook his head and walked back to the bed, knowing that Cadderly and Pikel
could continue their outlandish conversations for hours on end.
"Centuries
ago, when the library was built," Cadderly began, "no one had any
idea it would grow so large. The founders wanted a secluded spot where they
could study in private, so they chose the high passes of the Snowflake
Mountains. Most of the northern and eastern wings, as well as the third and
fourth stories were added much later, but we have run out of room. To the front
and both sides, the ground slopes too steeply to allow further expansion
without supports, and to the west, behind us, the mountain stone is too tough
to be properly cleared away."
"Oh?"
muttered Pikel, not so sure of that. The Bouldershoulder brothers had come from
the forbidding Galena Mountains, far to the north beyond Vaasa, where the
ground was ever frozen and the stones were as tough as any in the Realms. But
not too tough for a determined dwarf! Pikel kept Percival thoughts private,
though, not wanting to halt Cadderly's mounting momentum.
"I
think we should go up," Cadderly said casually. "Add a fifth, and
possibly sixth level."
"It'd
never hold," grumbled Ivan from the bed, not so intrigued and wanting to
get back to the business of the crossbow.
"Aha!"
said Cadderly, pointing a finger straight up in the air. Ivan knew by the look
on Cadderly's face that he had played right into the young man's hopes.
Cadderly did so love doubters where his inventions were concerned.
"The
aerial buttress!" the young priest proclaimed, holding his hands out to
the strange, two-structured wall.
"Oo
oi!" agreed Pikel, who had already tested the wall's strength.
"There's
one for the faeries," grumbled a doubting Ivan. "Look at it,
Ivan," Cadderly said reverently. "One for the faeries, indeed, if
that phrase implies grace. The strength of the design cannot be underestimated.
The bridges displace stress so that the walls, with minimal stonework, can hold
much more than you might believe, leaving incredible possibilities for window
designs."
"Sure,
from the top," the dwarf replied gruffly, "but how might it take a
giant's ram on the side? And what about the wind? There are mighty cross-breezes
up here, and mightier still if you go building higher!"
Cadderly
spent a long moment considering the aerial buttress. Every time he looked upon
the model, he was filled with hope. He thought that a library should be an
enlightening place, physically and mentally, and while the Edificant Library
was surrounded by impressive grounds and mountain views, it remained a dark and
thick-stoned place. The popular architecture of the time required massive stone
foundations and did not allow for large windows. In the world of the Edificant
Library, sunlight was something to be enjoyed outside. "Scholars should
not sit squinting by candlelight, even at midday, to read their tomes,"
Cadderly argued.
"The
greatest weapons in all the world were forged in deep holes by my
ancestors," Ivan countered.
"It
was just the beginnings of an idea," mumbled Cadderly defensively,
suddenly agreeing with Ivan that they should get back to the crossbow. Cadderly
did not doubt his design's potential, but he realized that he would have a hard
time convincing a dwarf, who had lived a century in tight tunnels, of the value
of sunlight.
Ever
sympathetic, Pikel put a hand on Cadderly's shoulder.
"Now
for the bow," Ivan said, opening the wooden coffer. The dwarf gently
lifted a small, nearly completed crossbow, beautifully constructed and
resembling the bow depicted on the tapestry. "The work's making me
thirsty!"
"The
scroll is nearly translated," Cadderly assured him, not missing the
reference to the ancient dwarven mead recipe he had promised in return for the
crossbow. Cadderly had actually translated the recipe many weeks before but had
held it back, knowing that Ivan would complete the bow more quickly with such a
prize dangling just out of his reach.
"That's
good, boy," Ivan replied, smacking his lips. "You get your bow in a
week, but I'll need the picture to finish it. You got something smaller showing
it?"
Cadderly
shook his head. "All I have is the tapestry," he admitted.
"You
want me to walk through the halls with a stolen tapestry under me arm?"
Ivan roared.
"Borrowed,"
Cadderly corrected.
"With
Headmistress Pertelope's blessings?" Ivan asked sarcastically.
"Uh
oh," added Pikel.
"She
will never miss it," Cadderly replied, unconvincingly. "If she does,
I will tell her that I needed it to confirm some passages in the drow tome I am
translating."
"Pertelope
knows more of drow than does yerself," Ivan reminded him. "She's the
one who gave you the book!"
"Uh
oh," Pikel said again.
"The
mead is blacker than midnight," Cadderly said offhandedly, "so the
recipe says. It would kill a fair-sized tree if you poured only a pint of it
along the roots."
"Get
the other end," Ivan said to Pikel. Pikel pulled his mushroom-shaped
cook's cap over the tangle of green hair, which made his ears stick out even
farther, then helped Ivan roll the tapestry up tight. They hoisted it together
while Cadderly cracked open the door and made sure that the hall was empty.
Cadderly
glanced over his shoulder at the diminishing angle of the shining sun through
his window. His floor was marked in measured intervals to serve as a morning
clock. "A few minutes to noon," he said to the dwarves. "Brother
Chaunticleer will begin the midday canticle soon. All the host priests are
required to attend and most of the others usually go. The way should be
clear."
Ivan
gave Cadderly a sour look.
"Tut-tut,"
muttered Pikel, shaking his furry face and wagging a finger at Cadderly.
"I
will get there!" Cadderly growled at them. "No one notices if I am
just a few moments late."
The
melody began then, Brother Chaunticleer's perfect soprano wafting gently
through the corridors of the ancient library. Every noon, Chaunticleer ascended
to his place at the podium of the library's great hall to sing two songs, the
respective legends of Deneir and Oghma. Many scholars came to the library to
study, it was true, but many others came to hear the renowned Chaunticleer. He
sang a cappella but could fill the great hall and the rooms beyond with his
amazing four-octave voice so fully that listeners had to look at him often just
to make sure that no choir stood behind him.
Oghma's
song was first tins day, and under the cover of that energetic and rousing
tune, the brothers Bouldershoulder bounced and stumbled their way down two
curving stairways and through a dozen too-tight doorways to their quarters
beside the library's kitchen.
Cadderly
entered the great hall at about the same time, slipping quietly through the
high oaken double doors and moving to the side, behind a large arch support.
"Aerial
buttress," he couldn't help but mutter, shaking his head in dismay at the
bulky pillar. He realized then that he had not entered unnoticed. Kierkan Rufo
smiled at him from the shadows of the next nearest arch.
Cadderly
knew that the conniving Rufo had waited for him, seeking new fuel for
Headmaster Avery's ire, and he knew that Avery would not excuse his tardiness.
Cadderly pretended not to care, not wanting to give Rufo the satisfaction. He
pointedly looked away and pulled out his spindle-disks, an archaic weapon used
by ancient halfling tribesmen of southern Luiren. The device consisted of two
circular rock crystal disks, each a finger's breadth wide and a finger's length
in diameter, joined in their centers by a small bar on which was wrapped a
string. Cadderly had discovered the weapon in an obscure tome and had actually
improved on the design, using a metal connecting bar with a small hole through
which the string could be threaded and knotted rather than tied.
Cadderly
slipped his finger through the loop on the string's loose end. With a flick of
his wrist, he sent the spindle-disks rolling down the length of the string,
then brought them spinning back to his hand with a slight jerk of his finger.
Cadderly
sneaked a look out of the comer of his eye. Knowing that he had Rufo's
attention, he sent the disks down again, quickly looped the string over the
fingers of his free hand to form a triangle, and held the still-spinning disks
in the middle, rocking them back and forth like a baby's cradle. Rufo was
leaning forward now, mesmerized by the game, and Cadderly didn't miss the
opportunity.
He
released the string from his cradling hand, gathering the spindle-disks too
suddenly for the eye to follow, then flicked them out straight at his rival. The
string brought the flying device back to Cadderly's hand before it got halfway
to Rufo, but the startled man stumbled backward and toppled. Cadderly
congratulated himself for his timing, for Rufo's noisy descent coincided with
the most dramatic pause in Brother Chaunticleer's song.
"Ssshhh!"
came the angry hisses from every direction, and Cadderly's was not the least
among them. It seemed that Headmaster Avery would have two students to
discipline that night.
To Know
Your Allies
The
meeting chamber at Castle Trinity was quite different from the great and ornate
hall of the Edificant Library. Its ceiling was low and its door squat and
barred and heavily guarded. A single triangular table dominated the room, with
three chairs on each side, one group for the wizards, one for the fighters, and
one for the clerics.
Scan
the room, Druzil suggested telepathically to Aballister, who was in the room.
The imp surveyed through the wizard's eyes, using their telepathic link to view
whatever Aballister was looking at. Aballister did as he was bidden, moving his
gaze around the triangular table, first to Ragnor and the other two fighters,
then to Barjin and his two cleric companions.
Druzil
broke the mental connection suddenly and hissed a wicked laugh, knowing that he
had left Aballister in complete confusion. He could feel the wizard trying to
reestablish the mental link, could hear Aballister's thoughts calling to him.
But
Aballister was not in command of their telepathy; the imp had used this mental
form of communication for more decades than Aballister had been alive and it
was he who decided when and where he and the wizard would link. For now, Druzil
had no reason to continue contact; he had seen all that he needed to see.
Barjin was in the meeting hall and would be busy there for some time.
Druzil
found his center of magic, his otherworldly essence, which allowed him to
transcend the physical rules governing creatures of this host plane. A few
seconds later, the imp faded from sight, becoming transparent, then he was off,
flapping down the hallways to a wing of Castle Trinity to which he rarely
traveled.
It was
risky business, Druzil knew, but if the chaos curse was to be in the priest's
hands, then Druzil needed to know more about him.
Druzil
knew that Barjin's door would be locked and heavily warded against intrusion,
but he considered that a minor problem with one of Barjin's bodyguards standing
rigid in the hall just outside it. Druzil entered the man's thoughts just long
enough to plant a suggestion, a magical request.
"There
is an intruder in Barjin's room," came Druzil's silent beckon.
The
guard glanced about nervously for a moment, as if seeking the source of the
call. He stared long at Barjin's door-looking right through the invisible
imp-then hastily fumbled with some keys, spoke a command word to prevent the
warding glyphs from exploding, and entered.
Druzil
quietly mouthed the same command word and walked in behind.
After,
a few minutes of inspecting the apparently empty room, the guard shook his head
and left, locking the door behind him.
Druzil
snickered at how easily some humans could be controlled. The imp didn't have
the time or inclination to gloat, though, not with all of the mysterious
Barjin's secrets open for his inspection. The room was ordinary enough for one
of Barjin's stature. A large canopy bed dominated the wall opposite the door,
with a night table beside it. Druzil rubbed his hands together eagerly as he
headed for the table. Atop it, next to the lamp, was a black-bound book and,
next to that, several quills and an ink-well.
"How
thoughtful of you to keep a journal," Druzil rasped, carefully opening the
work. He read through the first entries, dated two years earlier. They were
mostly lamentations by Barjin, accounts of his exploits in the northern
kingdoms of Vaasa, Damara, and Narfell, to the north. Druzil's already
considerable respect for the priest grew as he devoured the words. Barjin once
had commanded an army and had served a powerful master-he gave no direct references
to the man, if it was a man-not as a cleric, but as a wizard!
Druzil
paused to consider this revelation, then hissed and read on. Although
formidable, Barjin admitted that he had not been the most powerful of the
wizards in his master's service-again a vague reference to the mysterious
master, giving Druzil the impression that perhaps Barjin, even years later,
feared to speak the creature's name aloud or write it down. Barjin's rise to
power had come later, when the army had taken on a religious zeal and his
master apparently had assumed godlike proportions.
Druzil
couldn't contain a snicker at the striking parallels between the priest's
ascent and the chaos curse's transformation into a goddess's direct agent.
Barjin
had become a priest and headed an army to fulfill his evil master's desire to
conquer the whole of the northland. The plans had fallen through, though, when
an order of paladins-Druzil hissed aloud when he read that cursed word-arose in
Damara and organized an army of its own. Barjin's master and most of his
cohorts had been thrown down, but Barjin had barely escaped with his life and a
portion of the evil army's accumulated wealth.
Barjin
had fled south, alone but for a few lackeys. Since his proclaimed
"god" had been dispatched, his clerical powers had greatly
diminished. Druzil spent a while musing over this revelation; nowhere did
Barjin mention his claimed meeting with Talona's avatar.
The
journal went on to tell of Barjin's joining the triumvirate at Castle
Trinity-again with no mention of the avatar. Druzil snickered aloud at Barjin's
opportunism. Even a year ago, coming in as a pitiful refugee, Barjin had duped
Castle Trinity's leaders, had used their fanaticism against them.
After
only a month in the castle, Barjin had ascended to the third rank in the
priestly hierarchy, and after only a few more weeks, Barjin had taken over
undisputed command as Talona's chief representative. And yet, Druzil realized
as he flipped quickly through the pages, Barjin thought not enough about his goddess
to give her more than a few passing references in his journal.
Aballister
was correct: Barjin was a hypocrite, a fact that hardly seemed to matter. Again
Druzil snickered aloud at the irony, at the pure chaos.
Druzil
knew the rest of Barjin's story well enough; he had been present long before
Barjin ever arrived. The journal, sadly, did not offer any further revelations,
but the imp was not disappointed when he dosed the book; there were too many
other items to be investigated.
Barjin's
new vestments, a conical cap and expensive purple robes embroidered in red with
the new insignia of the triumvirate, hung beside the bed. An offspring of
Talona's symbol, the three teardrops inside a triangle's points, this one
sported a trident, its three prongs tipped by teardrop-shaped bottles, much
like the one carrying the chaos curse. Barjin had designed it personally, and
only Ragnor had offered any resistance.
"So
you do plan to spread the word of your god," Druzil muttered a few moments
later when he discovered Barjin's bedroll, folded tent, and stuffed backpack
under the bed. He reached for the items, then jumped back suddenly, sensing a
presence in that pile. He felt the beginnings of a telepathic communication,
but not from Aballister. Eagerly, the imp reached under the bed and pulled the
items out, recognizing the telepathic source immediately as Barjin's magical
mace.
"Screaming
Maiden," Druzil said, echoing the item's telepathic declaration and
examining the crafted item. Its obsidian head was that of a pretty young girl,
strangely innocuous and appealing. Druzil saw through the grotesque facade. He
knew this was not a weapon of the material plane, but one that had been forged
in the Abyss, or in the Nine Hells, or in Tarterus, or in one of the other lower
planes. It was sentient, obviously, and hungry. More than anything else, Druzil
could feel its hunger, its blood-lust. He watched in joyful amazement as the
mace enhanced that point, its obsidian head twisting into a leering visage, a
fanged maw opening wide.
Druzil
clapped his padded hands together and smiled wickedly. His respect for Barjin
continued to mount, for any mortal capable of wielding such a weapon must be
powerful indeed. Rumors around the fortress expressed disdain that Barjin did
not favor the poisoned dagger, the usual weapon of Talona's clerics, but,
seeing this mace up close and sensing its terrible power, Druzil agreed with
the priest's choice.
Inside
the rolled tent Druzil found a brazier and tripod nearly as intricate and
rune-covered as Aballister's. "You are a sorcerer, too, Barjin," the
imp whispered, wondering what future events that might imply. Already Druzil
imagined what his life might be like if he had stepped through the brazier to
Barjin's call instead of Aballister's.
The
thick backpack held other wondrous items. Druzil found a deep, gem-encrusted
bowl of beaten platinum, no doubt worth a king's fortune. Druzil placed it
carefully on the floor and reached back into the pack, as exuberant as a hungry
ore shoving its arm down a rat hole.
He
pulled out a solid and heavy object, fist-sized and wrapped in black doth.
Whatever was inside dearly emanated magical energies, and Druzil took care to
lift only one comer of the doth to peek in. He beheld a huge black sapphire,
recognized it as a necromancer's stone, and quickly rewrapped it in the
shielding cloth. If exposed, such a stone could send out a call to the dead,
summoning ghosts or ghouls, or any other netherworld monsters in the area.
Of
similar magical properties was the small ceramic flask that Druzil inspected
next. He unstoppered it and sniffed, sneezing as some ashes came into his ample
nose.
"Ashes?"
the imp whispered curiously, peering in. Under the black cloth, the
necromancer's stone pulsed, and Druzil understood. "Long dead
spirit," he muttered, quickly dosing the flask.
Nothing
else showed to be of any particular interest, so Druzil carefully rewrapped and
replaced everything as he had found it. He hopped up on the comfortable bed,
secure with his invisibility, and relaxed, pondering all that he had learned.
This Barjin was a diversified human-priest, wizard, general, dabbling in
sorcery, necromancy, and who could guess what else.
"Yes,
a very resourceful human," Druzil decided. He felt better about Barjin's
involvement in the chaos curse. He checked in telepathically with Aballister
for just a moment, to make certain that the meeting was in full swing, then
congratulated himself on his cunning and folded his plump hands behind his
head.
Soon he
was fast asleep.
* * * *
*
"We
have only the one suitable bottle," said Aballister, representing the
wizards. "The ever-smoking devices are difficult to create, requiring rare
gems and metals, and we all know how costly it was to brew even a small amount
of the elixir." He felt Barjin's stare boring into him at the reference to
the cost.
"Do
not speak of the Most Fatal Horror as an elixir," the clerical leader
commanded. "Once it may have been just a magical potion, but now it is
much more."
"Tuanta Quiro Miancay," chanted the
other two priests, scarred and ugly men with blotchy tattoos covering nearly
every inch of their exposed skin.
Aballister
returned Barjin's glare. He wanted to scream at Barjin's hypocrisy, to shake
the other clerics into action against him, but Aballister wisely checked his
outburst. He knew that any accusations against Barjin would produce the
opposite results and that he would become the target of the faithful. Druzil's
estimation of Barjin had been correct, Aballister had to admit. The priest had
indeed consolidated his power.
"Brewing
the Most Fatal Horror," conceded Aballister, "has depleted our
resources. To begin again and create more, and also acquire another bottle,
could well prove beyond our limits."
"Why
do we need these stupid bottles?" interrupted Ragnor. "If the stuffs
a god as you say, then ..."
Barjin
was quick to answer. "The Most Fatal Horror is merely an agent of
Talona," the priest explained calmly. "In itself, it is not a god,
but it will aid us to comply with Talona's edicts."
Ragnor's
eyes narrowed dangerously. It was obvious that the volatile ogrillon's patience
had just about expired.
"All
of your followers embrace Tuanta Quiro Miancay," Barjin reminded Ragnor,
"embrace it with all their hearts." Ragnor eased back in his seat,
flinching at the threatening implications.
Aballister
studied Barjin curiously for a long while, awed by how easily the priest had
calmed the ogrillon. Barjin was tall, vigorous, and imposing, but he was no
match physically for Ragnor. Usually, physical strength was all that mattered
to the powerful fighter; Ragnor normally showed the clerics and wizards less
respect than he gave to even his lowliest soldiers. Barjin seemed to be the
exception, though; especially of late, Ragnor had not openly opposed him on any
issue.
Aballister,
while concerned, was not surprised. He knew that Barjin's powers went far
beyond the priest's physical abilities. Barjin was a charmer and a hypnotist, a
careful strategist who weighed his opponent's mind-set above all else and used
spells as often for simple enhancement of a favorable situation as to affect
those he meant to destroy. Just a few weeks earlier, a conspiracy had been
discovered within the evil triumvirate. The single prisoner had resisted
Ragnor's interrogations, at the price of incredible pain and several toes, but
Barjin had the wretch talking within an hour, willingly divulging all that he
knew about his fellow conspirators.
Whispers
said that the tortured man actually believed Barjin was an ally, right up until
the priest casually bashed in his skull. Aballister did not doubt those
whispers and was not surprised. That was how Barjin worked; few could resist
the priest's hypnotic charisma. Aballister did not know much of Barjin's former
deity, lost in the wastelands of Vaasa, but what he had seen of the refugee
priest's spell repertoire was beyond the norm that he would expect of clerics.
Again Aballister referred to the whispers for his answers, rumors that
indicated Barjin dabbled in wizardry as well as clerical magic.
Barjin
was still speaking reverently of the elixir when Aballister turned his
attention back to the meeting. The priest's preaching held the other clerics,
and Ragnor's two fighter companions, awestruck. Aballister shook his head and
dared not interrupt. He considered again the course that his life had taken,
how the avatar had led him to Druzil, and Druzil had delivered the recipe. Then
the avatar had led Barjin to Castle Trinity. That was the part of the puzzle
that did not fit in Aballister's reasoning. After a year of watching the
priest, Aballister remained convinced that Barjin was no true disciple of
Talona, but again he reminded himself that Barjin, sincere or not, was
furthering the cause, and that because of Barjin's purse and influence, all the
region might soon be claimed in the goddess's name.
Aballister
let out a profound sigh; such were the paradoxes of chaos.
"Aballister?" Barjin asked. The
wizard cleared his throat nervously and glanced around, realizing he had missed
much of the conversation.
"Ragnor
was inquiring about the necessity of the bottles," Barjin politely
explained.
"The
bottles, yes," Aballister stuttered. "The elix- ... the Most Fatal Horror is potent with or
without them. Minute amounts are all that are required for the chaos curse to
take effect, but it will last only a short while. With the ever-smoking
bottles, the god-stuff is released continually. We have created just a few
drops, but I believe there is enough liquid to fuel the ever-smoking bottle for
months, perhaps years, if the mixture within the bottle is correct."
Barjin
looked around and exchanged nods with his clerical companions. "We have
decided that Talona's agent is ready," he declared.
"You
have ..." the wizard Dorigen
stammered in disbelief.
Aballister
stared long and hard at Barjin. He had meant to take command of the meeting and
suggest just what the priest was getting at; again Barjin had thought one step
ahead of him, had stolen his thunder.
"We
are the representatives of Talona," Barjin coolly replied to Dorigen's
outrage. His companions bobbed their heads stupidly.
Aballister's
clenched fingers nearly tore a chunk out of his oaken chair.
"The
goddess has spoken to us, has revealed her wishes," Barjin continued
smugly. "Our conquests will soon begin!"
Ragnor
beat a fist on the table in excited agreement; now the priest was speaking in
terms the ogrillon warrior could understand. "Who are you planning for
carrying the bottle?" Ragnor asked bluntly.
"I
will carry it," Aballister quickly put in. He knew as soon as he heard his
own words that his claim sounded desperate, a last attempt to salvage his own
position of power.
Barjin
shot him an incredulous look.
"It was I who met Talona's avatar,"
Aballister insisted, "and I who discovered the recipe for the Most Fatal
Horror."
"For
that, we thank you," remarked the priest in a condescending tone.
Aballister started to protest, but sank back in Percival chair as a magical
message was wispered into his ear. Do not fight with me over this, wizard,
Barjin quietly warned.
Aballister
knew that the critical moment was upon him.
he gave in now, he felt he might never recover his standing in Castle
Trinity, but if he argued against Barjin, against the religious fury that the
priest had inspired, he would surely split the order and might find himself
badly outnumbered.
"The
priests of Talona will carry the bottle, of course," Barjin answered
Ragnor. "We are the true disciples."
"You
are one leg of a ruling triumvirate," Aballister dared to remind him.
"Do not claim the Most Fatal Horror solely as your own."
Ragnor
did not see things quite the same way. "Leave it to the priests," the
ogrillon demanded.
Aballister's
surprise disappeared as soon as he realized that the brutish fighter,
suspicious of magic, was simply relieved that he would not have to carry the
bottle.
"Agreed,"
Barjin quickly put in. Aballister started to speak out, but Dorigen put a hand
over his arm and gave him a look that begged him to let it go.
"You
have something to say, good wizard?" Barjin asked.
Aballister
shook his head and sank even deeper into his chair, and even deeper into
despair.
"Then
it is settled," said Barjin. "The Most Fatal Horror will descend upon
our enemies, carried by my second-" he nodded to the priests on his right
and on his left "-and my third."
"No!"
Aballister blurted, seeing a way to salvage something of this disaster. All
gazes descended upon him; he saw Ragnor put a hand to Percival sword hilt.
"Your second?" the wizard asked, and now it was he who feigned an
incredulous tone. "Your third?" Aballister rose from his chair and
held his arms out stretched.
"Is
this not the direct agent of our goddess?" he preached. "Is this not
the beginning of our greatest ambitions? No, only Barjin is fit to carry such a
precious artifact. Only Barjin can properly begin the reign of chaos." The
gathering turned as one to Barjin and Aballister returned to his seat, thinking
that he had at last outmaneuvered the clever priest. If he could get Barjin out
of Castle Trinity for a time, he could reestablish Percival claim as the chief
speaker for the brotherhood.
Unexpectedly,
the priest didn't argue. "I will carry it," he said. He looked to the
other, startled clerics and added, "And I will go alone."
"All
the fun for you?" Ragnor complained. "Merely the first battle of the
war," Barjin responded. "My warriors desire battle," Ragnor
pressed. "They hunger for blood!"
"They
will have all that they can drink and more!" Barjin snapped. "But I
will go first and cripple our enemies. When I return, Ragnor can lead the
second assault."
This
seemed to satisfy the ogrillon, and now Aballister understood Barjin's
salvaging ploy. By going alone, the priest would not only leave his clerical
cohorts to keep an eye on things, but he would leave Ragnor and his soldiers.
Always vying for power, the ogrillon, with the prodding of the remaining
clerics, would not allow Aballister and the wizards to regain a firm foothold.
"Where
will you loose it?" Aballister asked. "And when?" "There
are preparations to be made before I leave," Barjin answered, "things
that only a priest, a true disciple, would understand. As to where, let it be
of no concern to you." "But-" Aballister started, only to be
interrupted sharply. "Talona alone will tell me," Barjin growled with
finality. Aballister glared in outrage but did not respond. Barjin was a
slippery opponent; every time Aballister had him cornered, he merely invoked
the name of the goddess, as if that answered everything.
"It is decided," Barjin continued,
seeing no response forthcoming. "This meeting is at an end."
* * * *
*
"Oh,
go away," Druzil slurred, both audibly and telepathically. Aballister was
looking for him, trying to get into his thoughts. Druzil smiled at his superiority
in keeping the wizard out and lazily rolled over.
Then
the imp realized what Aballister's call might signify. He sat up with a start
and looked into Aballister's mind just long enough to see that the wizard had
returned to his own room. Druzil hadn't meant to sleep this long, had wanted to
be far from this place before the meeting adjourned.
Druzil
held very still when the door opened and Barjin entered the room.
If he
had been more attentive, the priest might have sensed the invisible presence. Barjin
had other things on his mind, though. He rushed for the bed and Druzil
recoiled, thinking Barjin meant to attack him. But Barjin dropped to his knees
and reached eagerly for his pack and Percival enchanted mace.
"You
and I," Barjin said to the weapon, holding it out before him, "will
spread the word of their goddess and reap the rewards of chaos. It has been too
long since you feasted on the blood of humans, my pet, far too long." The
mace couldn't audibly reply, of course, but Druzil thought he saw a smile widen
on the pretty girl's sculpted face.
"And
you," Barjin said into the backpack, to the ceramic, ash-filled flask as
far as Druzil could tell. "Prince Khalif. Could it be the time for you to
walk the earth again?" Barjin snapped the backpack shut and roared with
such sincere and exuberant laughter that Druzil almost joined in.
The imp
promptly reminded himself that he and Barjin were not, as yet, formally allied,
and that Barjin would most definitely prove a dangerous enemy. Fortunately for
the imp, Barjin, in his haste, had not closed the door behind him. Druzil
crawled off the bed, using Barjin's laughter as cover, and slipped out the
door, wisely uttering the password for the warding glyph as he crossed the
threshold.
* * * *
*
Barjin left
Castle Trinity five days later, bearing the ever-smoking bottle. He traveled
with a small entourage of Ragnor's fighters, but they would only serve as
escorts as far as the human settlement of Carradoon, near Impresk Lake on the
southeastern edge of the Snowflake Mountains. Barjin would go alone from there
to Percival final destination, which he and his clerical conspirators would
still not reveal to the other leaders of Castle Trinity.
Back at
the fortress, Aballister and the wizards waited as patiently as possible,
confident that their turn would come. Ragnor's force was not so patient,
though. The ogrillon wanted battle, wanted to begin the offensive right away.
Ragnor was not a stupid creature, though. He knew that Percival small force,
only a few hundred strong unless he managed to entice the neighboring goblinoid
tribes to join in, would not have an easy time of conquering the lake, the
mountains, and the forest.
Still,
and despite all Percival reasoning, Ragnor was hungry. Since Percival very first
day at Castle Trinity, nearly five years before, the ogrillon had vowed revenge
on Shilmista Forest, on the elves who had defeated Percival tribe and driven
him and the other refugees far from the wood.
Every
member of Castle Trinity, from lowly soldier to wizard to priest, had spoken
often of the day they would rise from their disguised holes and blacken the
region. All now held their breath, awaiting Barjin's return, awaiting
confirmation that the conquest had begun.
The cloaked figure moved slowly toward
Danica. Thinking it a monk of some obscure and eccentric sect-and such monks
were usually hostile and dangerous, determined to prove their fighting prowess
against any other monks they encountered-the woman gathered up the pile of
parchments she had been studying and quickly moved to another table. The tall
figure, cowl pulled low to hide its face, turned to pursue, its feet making
unrecognizable scuffling noises on the stone floor.
Danica
looked around. It was late; this study hall, on the second floor above the
library, was nearly empty and Danica decided that it might be time for her to
retire, too. She realized that she was exhausted, and she wondered if she might
be imagining things.
The
figure came on, slowly, menacingly, and Danica thought that perhaps it was not
some other monk. What horrors might that low cowl be hiding? she wondered. She
gathered the parchments again and started boldly for the main aisle, though
that course meant passing right by the figure.
A hand
shot out and caught her shoulder. Danica stifled a startled cry and spun about
to face the shadowy cowl, losing many of her scrolls in the action. As she
collected her wits, though, Danica realized that it was no skeletal apparition
holding her in an icy, undead grip. It was a human hand, warm and gentle, and
showing signs of ink near the fingernails. The hand of a scribe. "Fear
not!" the specter rasped.
Danica
knew that voice too well to be deceived by the breathless mask. She scowled and
crossed her arms over her chest.
Understanding
that the joke was ended, Cadderly removed his hand from Danica's shoulder and
quickly pulled back the cowl. "Greetings!" he said, smiling widely
into Danica's frown as though he hoped his mirth to be a contagious thing.
"I thought I might find you here." Danica's silence did not promise
reciprocal warmth. "Do you like my disguise?" Cadderly went on.
"It had to be convincing for me to get past Avery's spies. They are
everywhere, and Rufo watches my every move even more closely now, though he
shared equal punishment."
"You
both deserved it!" Danica snapped back. "After your behavior in the
great hall."
"So
now we clean," Cadderly agreed with a resigned shrug. "Everywhere,
every day. It has been a long two weeks, with a longer two still to come."
"More
than that if Headmaster Avery catches you here," Danica warned.
Cadderly
shook his head and threw up his hands. "I was cleaning the kitchen,"
he explained. "Ivan and Pikel threw me out. 'It's me kitchen, boy!' "
Cadderly said in his best dwarven voice, slamming his fists on his hips and
puffing out his chest. " 'If there's any cleanin' to be done, it'll be
done by meself! I'm not needing a ..." Danica reminded him where he was to
quiet him and pulled him to the side, behind the cover of some book racks.
"That
was Ivan," Cadderly said. "Pikel did not say much. So the kitchen
will be cleaned by the dwarves if it is to be cleaned at all, and a good thing,
I say. An hour in there could put an end to my appetite for some time to
come!"
"That
does not excuse you from your work," Danica protested.
"I
am working," Cadderly retorted. He pulled aside the front of his heavy
woolen cloak and lifted a foot, revealing a sandal that was half shoe and half
scrubbing brush. "Every step I take cleans the library a little bit
more."
Danica
couldn't argue with Cadderly's unending stream of personalized logic. In truth,
she was glad that Cadderly had come to visit her. She hadn't seen much of him
in the last two weeks and found that she missed him dearly. Also, on a more
practical level, Danica was having trouble deciphering some important
parchments and Cadderly was just the person to help her.
"Could
you look at these?" she asked, retrieving the fallen scrolls.
"Master
Penpahg D'Ahn?" Cadderly replied, hardly surprised. He knew that Danica
had come to the Edificant Library more than a year before to study the
collected notes of Penpahg D'Ahn of Ashanath, the grandmaster monk who had died
five hundred years before. Danica's order was small and secretive, and few in this
part of the Realms had ever heard of Penpahg D'Ahn, but those who studied the
grandmaster's fighting and concentration techniques gave their lives over to
his philosophies wholeheartedly. Cadderly had only seen a fraction of Danica's
notes, but those had intrigued him, and he certainly could not dispute Danica's
fighting prowess. More than half of the proud Oghman clerics had been walking
around rubbing numerous bruises since the fiery young woman had come to the
library.
"I
am not quite certain of this interpretation," Danica explained, spreading
a parchment over a table.
Cadderly moved to her side and examined the
scroll. It began with a picture of crossed fists, which indicated that it was a
battle technique, but then showed the single open eye indicating a
concentration technique. Cadderly read on. "Gigel Nugel," he said
aloud, then he thought that over for a moment. "Iron Skull. The maneuver
is called Iron Skull."
Danica
banged a fist onto the table. "As I believed!" she said.
Cadderly
was almost afraid to ask. "What is it?" Danica held the parchment up
over the table's lamp, emphasizing a small, nearly lost sketch in the lower
comer. Cadderly eyed it closely. It appeared to be a large rock sitting atop a
man's head. "Is that supposed to be a representation of Penpahg
D'Ahn?" he asked. Danica nodded.
"So
now we know how he died," Cadderly snickered. Danica snapped the parchment
away, not appreciating the humor. Sometimes Cadderly's irreverence crossed the
boundaries of her considerable tolerance.
"I
am sorry," Cadderly apologized with a low bow. "Truly Penpahg D'Ahn
was an amazing person, but are you saying he could break stone with his
head?"
"It
is a test of discipline," Danica replied, her voice edged with mounting
excitement. "As are all of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn's teachings. The
grandmaster was in control of his body, of his very being."
"I
am quite certain that you would forget my very name if Master Penpahg D'Ahn
returned from the grave," Cadderly said mournfully.
"Forget
who's name?" Danica replied calmly, not playing into his game.
Cadderly
cast a hard glare at her but smiled as she smiled, unable to resist her charms.
The young scholar grew suddenly serious, though, and looked back to the
parchment. "Promise me that you are not intending to smash your face into
a stone," he said.
Danica crossed her arms over her chest and
tilted her head in an obstinate way, silently telling Cadderly to mind Percival
own business.
"Danica,"
Cadderly said firmly.
In
reply, Danica extended one finger and placed it down on the table. Her thoughts
turned inward; her concentration had to be complete. She lifted herself by that
single extended digit, bending at the waist and bringing her legs up even with
the table top. She held the pose for some time, glad for Cadderly's amazed
gape.
"The
powers of the body are beyond our comprehension and expectations," Danica
remarked, shifting to a sitting position on the table and wiggling her finger
to show Cadderly that it had suffered no damage. "Grandmaster Penpahg
D'Ahn understood them and learned to channel them to fit his needs. I will not
go out this night, nor any night soon, and attempt the Iron Skull, that much I
can promise you. You must understand that Iron Skull is but a minor test
compared to what I came here to achieve."
"Physical
suspension," Cadderly muttered with obvious distaste.
Danica's
face brightened. "Think of it!" she said. "The grandmaster was
able to stop his heart, to suspend his very breathing."
"There
are priests who can do the very same thing," Cadderly reminded her,
"and wizards, too. I saw the spell in the book I inscribed ..."
"This
is not a spell," Danica retorted. "Wizards and priests call upon
powers beyond their own minds and bodies. Think, though, of the control
necessary to do as Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn did. He could stop his heart from
beating at any time, using only Percival own understanding of his physical
being. You above all should appreciate that."
"I
do," Cadderly replied sincerely. His visage softened and he ran the back
of Percival hand gently across Danica's soft cheek. "But you scare me,
Danica. You are relying on tomes a half millennium old for techniques that
could be tragic. I do not remember with fondness how my life was before I met
you, and I do not want to think of what it would be without you."
"I
cannot change who I am," Danica replied quietly, but without compromise,
"nor will I surrender the goals I have chosen for my life."
Cadderly
considered her words for a few moments, weighing them against his own feelings.
He respected everything about Danica, and above all else it was her fire, her
willingness to accept and defeat all challenges, that he most loved. To tame
her, to put out that fire, Cadderly knew, would be to kill this Danica, his
Danica, more surely than any of Penpahg D'Ahn's seemingly impossible tests ever
could.
"I
cannot change," Danica said again.
Cadderly's
reply came straight from his heart. "I would not want you to."
* * * *
*
Barjin
knew that he could not enter the ivy-streaked building through any of its
windows or doors. While the Edificant Library was always open to scholars of
all nonevil sects, warding glyphs had been placed over every known entrance to
protect against those not invited-persons, such as Barjin, dedicated to the
spread of chaos and misery.
The
Edificant Library was an ancient building, and Barjin knew that ancient
buildings usually held secrets, even from their present inhabitants.
The
priest held the red-glowing bottle aloft before his eyes. "Ws have come to
our destination," he said, speaking as if the bottle could hear him,
"to where I will secure my position of rulership over Castle Trinity, and
over all the region once our conquest is completed." Barjin wanted to rush
in, find his catalyst, and set the events in motion. He really didn't believe
the elixir was an agent of Talona, but then, Barjin didn't consider himself an
agent of Talona, though he had joined her clerical order. He had adopted the
goddess for convenience, for mutual benefit, and knew that as long as his
actions furthered the Lady of Poison's evil designs, she would be content.
Barjin
spent the rest of the day, which was drizzly and dreary for late spring, in the
shadows behind the trees lining the wide road. He heard the midday canticle,
then watched many priests and other scholars exit alone or in groups for an
early afternoon stroll.
The
evil priest took a few precautionary measures, casting simple spells that would
help him blend into his background and remain undetected. He listened to the
casual banter of the passing groups, wondering with amusement how their words
might change when he loosed the Most Fatal Horror in their midst.
The
figure that soon caught Barjin's attention, though, was neither priest nor
scholar. Disheveled and gray haired, with a dirty and stubbly face and skin
wrinkled and browned from many years in the sun, Mullivy, the groundskeeper,
went about his routines as he had for four decades, sweeping the road and the
stairs to the front doors, heedless of the drizzle.
Barjin's
wicked grin spread wide. If there was a secret way into the Edificant Library,
this old man would know of it.
* * * *
*
The
clouds had broken by sunset, and a beautiful crimson patina lined the mountains
west of the library. Mullivy hardly noticed it, though, having seen too many
sunsets to be impressed anymore. He stretched the aches out of his old bones
and strolled to his small work shed off to the side of the library's huge main
building.
"You're
getting old, too," the groundskeeper said to the shack as the door opened
with a loud creak. He reached inside, meaning to replace his broom, then
stopped abruptly, frozen in place by some power he did not understand.
A hand
reached around him, prying the broom from his stub born grasp. Mullivy's mind
shouted warnings, but he could not bring his body to react, could not shout or
spin to face the person guiding that unexpected hand. He then was pushed into
the shed-fell face down, not able to lift an arm to break the fall-and the door
dosed behind him. He knew he was not alone.
* * * *
*
"You
will tell me," the sinister voice promised from the darkness.
Mullivy
hung by his wrists, as he had for several hours. The room was totally black,
but the groundskeeper sensed the awful presence all too near.
"I
could kill you and ask your corpse," Barjin said with a chuckle.
"Dead men talk, I assure you, and they do not lie."
"There's
no other way in," Mullivy said for perhaps the hundredth time.
Barjin
knew the old man was lying. At the beginning of the interrogation, the priest
had cast spells to distinguish truth from falsehood and Mullivy had failed that
test completely. Barjin reached out and gently grabbed the groundskeeper's
stomach in one hand.
"No!
No!" he begged, thrashing and trying to wiggle out of that grip. Barjin
held tight and began a soft chant, and soon Mullivy's insides felt as if they
were on fire, his stomach ripped by agony that no man could endure. His
screams, primal, hopeless, and helpless, emanated from that pained area.
"Do
cry out," Barjin chided him. "All about the shed is a spell of
silence, old fool. You will not disturb the slumber of those within the
library.
"But
then, why would you care for their sleep?" Barjin asked quietly, his voice
filled with feigned sympathy. He released his grip and softly stroked Mullivy's
wounded belly.
Mullivy
stopped thrashing and screaming, though the pain of the sinister spell
lingered.
"To them you are insignificant,"
Barjin purred, and his suggestion carried the weight of magical influences.
"The priests think themselves your betters. They allow you to sweep for
them and keep the rain gutters clean, but do they care for your pain? You are
out here suffering terribly, but do any of them rush to your aid?"
Mullivy's
heaving breaths settled into a calmer rhythm. "Still you defend them so
stubbornly," Barjin purred, knowing that his torture was beginning to wear
the groundskeeper down. "They would not defend you, and still you will not
show me your secret, at the cost of your life."
Even in
his most lucid state, Mullivy was not a powerful thinker. His best friend most
often was a bottle of stolen wine, and now, in his agony-racked jumble of
thoughts, this unseen assailant's words rang loudly of truth. Why shouldn't he
show this man his secret, the damp, moss-and-spider-filled dirt tunnel that led
to the lowest level of the library complex, the ancient and unused catacombs
below the wine cellar and the upper dungeon level? Suddenly, as Barjin had
planned, Mullivy's imagined appearance of the unseen assailant softened. In his
desperation, the groundskeeper needed to believe that Percival tormentor could
actually be his ally.
"You
won't tell them?" Mullivy asked.
"They
will be the last to know," Barjin promised hopefully. "You won't stop
me from getting at the wine?" Barjin backed off a step, surprised. He
understood the old man's initial hesitance. The groundskeeper's secret way into
the library led to the wine cellar, a stash that the wretch would not easily
part with. "Dear man," Barjin purred, "you may have all the wine
you desire-and much more, so much more."
* * * *
*
They
had barely entered the tunnel when Mullivy, carrying the torch, turned and
waved it threateningly at Barjin. Barjin's laughter mocked him, but Mullivy's voice
remained firm. "I showed you the way," the groundskeeper declared.
"Now I'm leaving."
"No,"
Barjin replied evenly. A shrug sent the priest's traveling cloak to the floor,
revealing him in all his splendor. He wore his new vestments, the purple silken
robes depicting a trident capped by three red flasks. On his belt was his
peculiar mace, its head a sculpture of a young girl. "You have joined me
now," Barjin explained. "You will never be leaving."
Terror
drove Mullivy's movements. He slapped the burning torch against Barjin's
shoulder and tried to push by, but the priest had prepared himself well before
handing the torch to the groundskeeper. The flames did not touch Barjin, did
not even singe his magnificent vestments, for they were defeated by a protection
spell.
Mullivy
tried a different tactic, slamming the torch like a club, but the vestments
carried a magical armor as solid as metal plate mail and the wooden torch
bounced off Barjin's shoulder without so much as causing the priest to flinch.
"Come
now, dear Mullivy," Barjin cajoled, taking no offense. "You do not
want me as an enemy."
Mullivy
fell back and nearly dropped the torch. It took Mm a long moment to get past
his terror, to even find his breath.
"Lead
on," Barjin bade him. "You know this tunnel and the passages beyond.
Show them to me."
Barjin
liked the catacombs-dusty and private and filled with the remains of long-dead
priests, some embalmed and others only cobweb-covered skeletons. He would have
use for them.
Mullivy
led him through a tour of the level, including the rickety stairwell that led
up to the library's wine cellar and a medium-sized chamber that once had been
used as a study for the original library. Barjin thought this room an excellent
place to set up his unholy altar, but first he had to see exactly how useful
the groundskeeper might prove.
They
lit several torches and set them in wall sconces, then Barjin led Mullivy to an
ancient table, one of many furnishings in the room, and produced his precious
baggage. The bottle had been heavily warded back at Castle Trinity; only
disciples of Talona or someone of pure heart could even touch it, and only the
latter could open it. Like Aballister, Barjin knew this to be an obstacle, but
unlike the wizard, the priest believed it a fitting one. What better irony than
to have one of pure heart loose the chaos curse?
"Open
it, I pray you," Barjin said.
The
groundskeeper studied the flask for a moment, then looked curiously at the
priest.
Barjin
knew Mullivy's weak spot. "It is ambrosia," the priest lied.
"The drink of the gods. One taste of it and forever after wines will taste
to you ten times as sweet, for the lingering effects of ambrosia will never
diminish. Drink, I pray you. You have certainly earned your reward."
Mullivy
licked his lips eagerly, took one final look at Barjin, then reached for the
glowing bottle. A jolt of electricity shot into him as he touched it,
blackening his fingers and throwing him across the room to where he slammed
into a wall. Barjin went over and dropped one arm under Mullivy's shoulder to
help him stand.
"I
thought not," the priest muttered to himself.
Still
twitching from the blast, his hair dancing wildly with lingering static,
Mullivy could not find his voice to reply.
"Fear
not," Barjin assured him. "You will serve me in other ways."
Mullivy noticed then that the priest held his girl's-head mace in his other
hand.
Mullivy
fell back against the wall and put his arms up defensively, but they were
hardly protection from Barjin's foul weapon. The innocent looking head swung in
at the doomed groundskeeper, transforming as it went. The weapon's image became
angular, evil, the Screaming Maiden, her mouth opening impossibly wide, to
reveal long, venom-tipped fangs.
She bit
hungrily through the bone in Mullivy's forearm and plowed on, crushing and
tearing into the man's chest. He twitched wildly for several agonizing moments,
then he slid down the wall and died.
Barjin, with many preparations still to make,
paid him no heed.
* * * *
*
Aballister
leaned back in his chair, breaking his concentration from his magical mirror
but not breaking the connection he had made. He had located Barjin and had
recognized the priest's surroundings: the Edificant Library. Aballister rubbed
his hands through his thinning hair and considered the revelation, news that he
found more than a little disturbing.
The
wizard had mixed emotions concerning the library, unresolved feelings that he
did not care to examine at this important time. Aballister had actually studied
there once, many years before, but his curiosity with denizens of the lower
planes had ended that relationship. The host priests thought it a pity that one
of Aballister's potential had to be asked to leave, but they expressed their
concerns that Aballister had some trouble distinguishing between good and evil,
between proper studies and dangerous practices.
The
expulsion did not end Aballister's relationship with the Edificant Library,
though. Other events over the ensuing years had served to increase the wizard's
ambiguous feelings toward the place. Now, in the overall plan of regional
conquest, Aballister would have greatly preferred to leave the library for
last, with him personally directing the attack. He never would have guessed
that Barjin would be so daring as to go after the place in the initial assault,
believing that the priest would venture to Shilmista, or to some vital spot in
Carradoon.
"Well?"
came a question from across the room.
"He
is in the Edificant Library," Aballister answered grimly. "The priest
has chosen to begin our campaign against our most powerful enemies."
Aballister
anticipated Druzil's reply well enough to mouth "bene tellemara"
along with the imp.
"Find him," Druzil demanded.
"What is he thinking?"
Aballister
put a curious gaze the imp's way, but if he had any notion to reprimand Druzil,
it was lost in his agreement with the demand. He leaned forward again toward
the large mirror and scried deeper, into the library's lower levels, through
the cobweb-covered tunnels to the room where Barjin had built his altar.
Barjin
glanced around nervously for a moment, then apparently recognized the source of
the mental connection. "Well met, Aballister," the priest said
smugly.
"You
take great chances," the wizard remarked.
"Do
you doubt the power of Tuanta Quiro Miancay?" Barjin asked. "The
agent of Talona?"
Aballister
had no intentions of reopening that unresolvable debate. Before he could
respond, another figure moved into the picture, pallid and unblinking, with one
broken arm hanging grotesquely and blood covering the left side of its chest.
"My
first soldier," Barjin explained, pulling Mullivy's body close to his
side. "I have a hundred more awaiting my call."
Aballister
recognized the "soldier" as an animated corpse, a zombie, and,
knowing that Barjin was in catacombs no doubt laced with burial vaults, the
wizard did not have to ask where he intended to find his army. Suddenly
Barjin's choice to assault the library did not seem so foolhardy; Aballister
had to wonder just how powerful his conniving rival might be, or might become.
Again the wizard's mixed feelings about the Edificant Library flooded over him.
Aballister wanted to order Barjin out of the place at once, but of course, he
had not the power to enforce the demand.
"Do
not underestimate me," Barjin said, as though he had read the wizard's
mind. "Once the library is defeated, all the region will be opened to us.
Now be gone from here; I have duties to attend that a simple wizard cannot
understand."
Aballister
wanted to voice his protest at Barjin's demeaning tone, but again, he knew that
words would carry no real weight. He broke the connection immediately and fell
back in his chair, memories welling inside him.
"Bene
tellemara," Druzil said again.
Aballister
looked over to the imp. "Barjin may bring us a great victory much earlier
than we expected," the wizard said, but there was little excitement in his
voice.
"It
is an unnecessary risk," Druzil spat back. "With Ragnor's forces
ready to march, Barjin could have found a better target. He could have gone to
the elves and loosed the curse there-Ragnor certainly hates them and intends to
make them his first target. If we took Shilmista Forest, we could march south
around the mountains to isolate the priests, surround the powerful library
before they ever even realized that trouble had come to their land."
Aballister
did not argue and wondered again if he had been wise in so easily relinquishing
control of the elixir to Barjin. He had justified each action, each failing,
but he knew in his heart that his cowardice had betrayed him.
"I
must go to him," Druzil remarked unexpectedly.
After
taking a moment to consider the request, Aballister decided not to contest it.
Sending Druzil would be a risk, the wizard knew, but he realized, too, that if
he had found the strength to take more risks in his earlier meetings with
Barjin, he might not now be in so awkward a position.
"Dorigen
informed me that Barjin carried an enchanted brazier with him," the wizard
said, rising and taking up his staff. "She is the best with sorcery. She
will know if Barjin opens a gate to the lower planes in search of allies. When
Dorigen confirms the opening, I will open a gate here. Your journey will be a
short one. Barjin will not know you as my emissary and will think that he
freely summoned you and that it is he who controls you."
Druzil
snapped his batlike wings around him and wisely held his tongue until
Aballister had exited the room.
"Your
emissary?" the imp snarled at the closed door.
Aballister
had a lot to learn.
Sunlight
and Darkness
Newander
felt invigorated as soon as he walked out the building's front doors, into the
morning sunshine. He had just completed his turn at translating the ancient
moss tome, hours huddled over the book with walls closing in all about him. For
all his doubts concerning his own views about civilization, Newander knew with
certainty that he preferred the open sky to any ceiling.
He was
supposed to be in the small chamber, resting now, while Cleo worked at the book
and Arcite performed the daily druidic rituals. Newander didn't often go
against Arcite's orders, but he could justify this transgression; he was much
more at rest walking along the mountain trails than in any room, no matter how
comfortable its bed.
The
druid found Percival skipping through the branches along the tree-lined lane.
"Will you come and talk with me, white one?" he called.
The
squirrel looked Newander's way, then glanced back to a different tree.
Following the gaze, Newander saw another squirrel, this one a normal gray
female, sitting very still and watching him.
"A
thousand pardons," Newander piped to Percival. "I did not know that
you were engaged, so to speak." He gave a low bow and went on his merry
way down the mountain road.
Percival
chattered at the departing druid for a few moments, then hopped back toward his
mate.
The
morning turned into afternoon and still the druid walked, away from the
Edificant Library. He had broken off the main road some time ago, following a
deer trail deep into the wilderness. Here he was at home and at peace, and he
was confident that no animal would rise against him.
Clouds
gathered over distant ridges, promising another of the common spring
thunderstorms. As with the animals, the druid did not fear the weather. He
would walk in a downpour and call it a bath, skip and slide along snow-covered
trails and call it play. While the gathering storm clouds did not deter the
druid, they did remind him that he still had duties back at the library and that
Arcite and Cleo soon would realize that he was gone. "Just a little bit
farther," he promised himself.
He
meant to turn back a short while later but caught sight of an eagle, soaring
high on the warm updrafts. The eagle spotted him, too, and swooped down low at
him, cawing angrily. At first, Newander thought the bird meant to attack, but
then he sorted through enough of its excited chatter to realize that it had
recognized him as a friend.
"What
is your trouble?" Newander asked the bird. He was fairly adept at
understanding bird calls, but the eagle was too agitated and spoke too rapidly
for Newander to hear anything but a clear warning of danger.
"Show
me," the druid replied, and he whistled and cawed to ensure that the eagle
understood. The great bird rushed off, climbing high into the sky so that
Newander would not lose sight of it as it soared ever deeper, and ever higher,
into the mountains.
When he
came out on a high and treeless ridge, the wind buffeted his green cloak
fiercely and the druid realized the cause of the eagle's distress. Across a
deep ravine, three filthy gray, monkeylike creatures scrambled up the side of a
tall, sheer cliff, using their prehensile tails and four clawed paws to gain a
secure hold on even the tiniest juts and cracks. On a shallow ledge near the
top of the cliff sat a great pile of twigs and sticks, an eagle aerie. Newander
could guess what was inside that nest.
The
infuriated eagle dove at the intruders repeatedly, but the monsters only spat
at it as it helplessly passed, or swiped at it with their formidable claws.
Newander
recognized these creatures as su-monsters, but he had no direct knowledge of
them and had never encountered them before. It was widely agreed that they were
vicious and bloodthirsty, but the druids had taken no formal stance concerning
them. Wire they an intelligent, evil group, or just a superbly adapted
predator, feared because of their prowess? Animal or monster?
To
many, the distinction would mean nothing, but to a druid, that question concerned
the very tenets of his or her religion. If the su-monsters were animal, then
terms such as "evil" did not apply to them and Newander could play no
role in aiding the pitiful eagle. Watching their eager climb, saliva dripping
from their toothy maws, Newander knew that he must do something. He called out
a few of the more common natural warning cries, and the su-monsters stopped
suddenly and looked at him, apparently noticing him for the first time. They
hooted and spat and waved their claws threateningly, then resumed their climb.
Newander
called out again. The su-monsters ignored him.
"Guide
me, Silvanus," Newander begged, closing his eyes. He knew that the
greatest druids of his order had held council about these rare but nightmarish
creatures, and that they had come to no definite conclusions. Thus, the common
practice among the order, though no edict had been issued, was to interfere
with su-monsters only if threatened directly.
In his heart, though, Newander knew that the
scene before him was unnatural.
He
called again to Silvanus, the Oak Father, and, to [as utter amazement, he
believed that he was answered. He looked to the nearest thunderhead, gauging
the distance, then back to the su-monsters.
"Halt!"
Newander cried out. "Go no farther!"
The
su-monsters turned at once, startled perhaps by the urgency, the power, in the
druid's voice. One found a loose stone and heaved it Newander's way, but the
ravine was wide as well as deep and the missile fell harmlessly.
"I
warn you again," the druid cried, sincerely desiring no battle. "I
have no fight with you, but you'll not get to the aerie."
The
monsters spat again and clawed ferociously at the empty air."
"Be
gone from here!" Newander cried. Their reply came in the form of spittle
and they turned and started up again.
Newander
had seen enough; the su-monsters were too close to the aerie for him to waste
any more time screaming warnings. He closed his eyes, clutched the oak leaf
holy symbol hanging on a leather cord about his neck, and called out to the
thunderstorm.
The
su-monsters paid him no heed, intent on the egg-filled nest just a few dozen
yards above them.
Druids
considered themselves the guardians of nature and the natural order. Unlike
wizards and priests of many other sects, druids accepted that they were the
watchdogs of the world and that the powers they brought were more a call for help to nature than any
manifestation of their own internal power. So it was as Newander called again
to the heavy black cloud, directing its fury.
The
thunderstroke shook the mountains for many miles around, sent the surprised
eagle spinning away blindly, and nearly knocked Newander from his feet. When
his sight returned, the druid saw that the cliff face was clear, the aerie was
safe. The su-monsters were nowhere to be seen, and the only evidence that they
had ever been there was a long scorch mark, a dripping crimson stain along the
mountain wall, and a small tuft of fur, a severed tail perhaps, burning on a
shallow ledge.
The
eagle flew to its nest, squawked happily, and soared down to thank the druid.
"You
are very welcome," the druid assured the bird. In conversing with the
eagle, he felt much better about his own destructive actions. Like most druids,
Newander was a gentle sort, and he was always uncomfortable when called to
battle. The fact that the cloud had answered his summons, a calling power that
he believed came from Silvanus, also gave him confidence that he had acted
correctly, that the su-monsters were indeed monsters and no natural predators.
Newander
interpreted the next series of the eagle's caws as an invitation to join the
bird at its aerie. The druid would have loved that, but the cliff across the
way was too formidable a barrier with night fast approaching.
"Another
day," he replied.
The
eagle cackled a few more thanks, then, explaining that many preparations were
still needed for the coming brood, bade the druid farewell and soared off.
Newander watched the bird fly away with sincere lament. He wished that he was
more skilled at his religion; druids of higher rank, including both Arcite and
Cleo, could actually assume the form of animals. If Newander were as skilled as
either of them, he could simply shed his light robes and transform himself into
an eagle, joining his new friend on the high, shallow ledge. Even more
enticing, as an eagle Newander could explore these majestic mountains from a
much improved viewpoint, with the wind breaking over Percival wings and eyes
sharp enough to sort out the movements of a field mouse from a mile up.
He
shook his head and shook away, too, his laments for what could not be. It was a
beautiful day, with a cleansing shower dose at hand, full of new-blossoming
flowers, chattering birds, fresh air on
a chill breeze, and clear and cold mountain spring water around every bend-all
the things that the druid loved best.
He
stripped off his robes and put them under a thick bush, then sat cross-legged
out on a high and open perch, awaiting the rain. It came in a torrential
downpour, and Newander considered its patter on the stones the sweetest of
nature's many songs.
The
storm broke in time for a wondrous sunset, scarlet fading to pink, and filling
every break in the towering mountain peaks to the west.
"I
fear that I am late in returning," Newander said to himself. He gave a
resigned shrug and could not prevent a boyish grin from spreading over his
face. "The library will still be there on the morrow," he
rationalized as he retrieved his robes, found a comfortable spot, and settled
in for the night.
* * * *
*
Barjin
hung the brazier pot in place on the tripod and put in the special mixture of
wood chips and incense blocks. He did not light the brazier at this time,
though, uncertain of how long it would take him to find a proper catalyst for
the chaos curse. Denizens of lower planes could be powerful allies, but they
were usually a wearisome lot, demanding more of their sum-moner's time and
energy than Barjin now had to give.
Similarly,
Barjin kept his necromancer's stone tightly wrapped in the shielding doth. As
with lower-plane creatures, some types of undead could prove difficult to
control, and, like the gate created by the enchanted brazier, the necromancer's
stone could summon an assortment of monsters, anything from the lowliest,
unthinking skeletons and zombies to cunning ghosts.
Still,
for all his glyphs and wards, Barjin felt insecure about leaving the altar
room, and the precious bottle, with nothing more intelligent and powerful than
Mullivy to stand guard. He needed an
ally, and he knew where to find it.
"Khalif,"
the evil priest muttered, retrieving the ceramic flask. He had carried it for
years, even before Percival days in Vaasa and before he had turned to Talona.
He had found the ash um among some ancient ruins while working as an apprentice
to a now dead wizard. Barjin, by the terms of his apprenticeship, was not
supposed to claim any discoveries as his own, but then, Barjin had never played
by any rules but his own. He had kept the ceramic um, filled with the ashes of
Prince Khalif, a noble of some ancient civilization according to the
accompanying parchment, private and safe through many years.
Barjin
hadn't fully come to appreciate the potential value of such a find until after
he began his training in clerical magic. Now he understood what he could do
with the ashes; all he needed was a proper receptacle.
He led
Mullivy out into the passageway beyond the altar room's door, a wide corridor
lined with alcoves, burial vaults of the highest-ranking founders of the
Edificant Library. Unlike the other vaults Barjin had seen down here, these
were not open chairs, but elaborately designed caskets, sarcophagi, gem-studded
and extravagant. Barjin could only hope, as he instructed Mullivy to open the
closest sarcophagus, that the early scholars had spared no expenses on the
contents within the casket as well, that they had used some embalming
techniques.
Mullivy,
for all his strength, could not begin to open the first sarcophagus, its lock
and hinges rusted fast. The zombie had better luck with the second, for its
cover simply fell away under Mullivy's heavy tug. As soon as the door opened, a
long tentacle shot out at Mullivy, followed by a second and a third. They did
no real damage, but Barjin was glad that the zombie, and not he, had opened the
lid.
Inside
was a carrion crawler, a monstrous wormlike beast with eight tentacles tipped
with paralyzing poison. Undead Mullivy could not be affected by such an attack
and, beyond the tentacles, the carrion crawler was virtually defenseless.
"Kill it!" Barjin instructed.
Mullivy waded in fearlessly, pounding away with his one good arm. The carrion
crawler was no more than a lifeless lump at the bottom of the casket when
Mullivy at last backed away.
"This
one will not do," Barjin mumbled, inspecting the empty husk inside the
sarcophagus. There was no dismay in his voice, though, for the body, ruined by
the carrion crawler, had been carefully wrapped in thick linen, a sure sign
that the ancient scholars had used some embalming techniques. Barjin also found
a small hole at the back of the sarcophagus, and he correctly assumed that the
carrion crawler had come in there, gorged itself for months, perhaps even
years, on the full corpse, then had grown too large to crawl back out.
Barjin
pulled Mullivy along eagerly, seeking another sarcophagus, one with no obvious
external holes. The third time paid for all, as the saying goes, for, with help
from the Screaming Maiden, Barjin and Mullivy were able to break through the
locks of the next casket. Inside, wrapped in linen, lay a well-preserved
corpse, the receptacle that Barjin needed.
Barjin
instructed Mullivy to carry the corpse gently into the altar room-he did not
want to touch the scabrous thing himself-then to rearrange the sarcophagi so
that this one's would be closest to the altar room door.
Barjin
shut the door behind his zombie, not wanting to be distracted by the noises
outside. He took out his clerical spellbook, turned to the section on
necromantic practices, and took out his necromancer's stone, thinking its
summoning powers to be helpful in calling back the spirit of Prince Khalif.
The
priest's chanting went on for more than an hour, and all the while he dropped
pinches of the ash onto the wrapped corpse. When the ceramic um was emptied,
the priest broke it apart, rubbing it clean on the receptacle body's linen.
Khalif's spirit had been contained in the whole of the ash; the absence of the
slightest motes could prove disastrous.
Barjin
became distracted by the necromancer's stone, for it began to glow with an
eerie, purple-black light. The priest snapped his gaze back to the mummy, his
attention caught by the sudden red glow as two dots of light appeared behind
the linen wrappings that covered the corpse's eyes. Barjin covered his hand in
clean cloth and carefully pulled away the linen.
He fell
back with a start. The mummy rose before him.
It
looked upon the priest with utter hatred, its eyes burning as bright red dots.
Barjin knew that mummies, like most monsters of the netherworld, hated all
living things, and Barjin, for the moment anyway, was a living thing.
"Back,
Khalif!" Barjin commanded as forcefully as he could manage. The mummy took
another stiff-legged step forward.
"Back,
I say!" Barjin snarled, replacing his fear with determined anger. "It
was I who retrieved your spirit, and here in my service you shall stay until I,
Barjin, release you to your eternal rest!"
He
thought his words pitifully inept, but the mummy responded, sliding back to its
original position.
"Turn
away!" Barjin cried, and the mummy did.
A smile
spread wide over the evil priest's face. He had dealt with denizens of the
lower planes many times before and had animated simple undead monsters, like
Mullivy, but this was a new and higher step for him. He had called to a
powerful spirit, torn it from the grave and forced it under his control.
Barjin
moved back to the door. "Come in, Mullivy," he ordered in a mirthful
tone. "Come and meet your new brother."
Catalyst
Pikel
just shook his hairy head and continued stirring the cauldron's contents with
his huge wooden spoon as Cadderly considered Ivan's grim news. "Can you
finish the crossbow?" Cadderly asked. "I can," Ivan replied,
"but me thinkin's that you should be more worried about yer own fate, boy.
The head-mistress was not smiling much when she found her tapestry in my
kitchen-not smiling a bit when she saw that Pikel had spilled gravy on one
comer."
Cadderly
flinched at that remark. Headmistress Pertelope was a tolerant woman,
especially of Cadderly and his inventions, but she prized her art collection
above all else. The tapestry depicting the elven war was one of her favorites.
"I
am sorry if I have caused you two any problems," Cadderly said sincerely,
though the honest lament did not stop him from dipping his fingers into a bowl
that Ivan had recently used for cake baking. "I did not believe . . "
Ivan
waved his concerns away. "Not a problem," the dwarf grunted. "We
just blamed everything on yerself."
"Just finish the crossbow,"
Cadderly instructed with a halfhearted chuckle. "I will go to Headmistress
Pertelope and set things right."
"Perhaps
Headmistress Pertelope will come to you," came a woman's voice from the
kitchen's doorway, behind Cadderly. The young scholar turned slowly and winced
even more when he saw that Headmaster Avery stood beside Pertelope.
"So
you have elevated your mischief to theft," Avery remarked. "I fear
that your time in the library may be drawing to an end, Brother Cadderly,
though that unfortunate conclusion was not altogether unexpected, given your
heri..."
"You
must be given the opportunity to explain," Pertelope interrupted, flashing
a sudden dark glare Avery's way. "I am not pleased, whatever excuse you
might offer."
"I
had ..." Cadderly stuttered.
"I meant to ..."
"Enough!"
Avery commanded, glowering at both Cadderly and the headmistress. "You may
explain about Headmistress Pertelope's tapestry later," he said to
Cadderly. "First, do tell me why are you here. Have you no work to do? I
thought that I had given you enough to keep you busy, but if I thought wrong, I
can surely correct the situation!"
"I
am busy," Cadderly insisted. "I only wanted to check on the kitchen,
to make certain that I had not missed anything in my cleaning." As soon as
Cadderly glanced around, he realized how ludicrous his claim sounded. Ivan and
Pikel never kept an overly neat shop. Half the floor was covered with spilled
flour, the other half with assorted herbs and sauces. Fungus-lined bowls, some
empty and some half full of last week's meals-some from meals even older than
that-sat on every available space, counter, or table.
Avery's
brow crinkled as he recognized the lie for what it was. "Do make certain
that the task was done correctly, Brother Cadderly," the headmaster
crooned with dripping sarcasm. "Then you may join Brother Rufo in his
inventory of the wine cellar. You wffl be informed of how Dean Thobicus will
proceed concerning your greater transgression." Avery turned and stalked
away, but Pertelope did not immediately follow.
"I
know that you meant to return the tapestry," the stately older woman said.
"Might I know why you saw the need to appropriate it at all? You might
have asked."
"We
only needed it for a few days," Cadderly replied. He looked to Ivan and
indicated the drawer, and the dwarf reached into it and produced the nearly
completed crossbow. "For this."
Pertelope's
hazel eyes sparkled at the sight. She moved across the room and tentatively
took the small weapon from the dwarf. "Exquisite," she muttered,
truly awed by the reproduction.
"My
thanks," Ivan replied proudly.
"Oo
oi!" Pikel added in a triumphant tone.
"I
would have shown it to you," Cadderly explained, "but I thought the
surprise would prove more pleasurable when it was completed."
Pertelope
smiled warmly at Cadderly. "Can you complete it without the
tapestry?"
Cadderly
nodded.
"I
will want to see it then, when it is done," said the headmistress,
suddenly businesslike. "You should have asked for the tapestry," she
scolded, then she glanced around and added under her breath, "Do not fear
too much for Headmaster Avery. He is excitable, but he forgets quickly. He
likes you, whatever his bluster. Go, now, to your duties."
* * * *
*
Barjin
crept from cask to cask, studying the angular man at work sorting wine bottles.
The evil priest had suspected that his victim, the catalyst for the chaos
curse, would come from the cellar, but he was no less delighted when he found
this man unexpectedly at work here on his very first trip up the rickety
stairway. The door to the lower dungeons was cleverly concealed-no doubt by the
thirsty groundskeeper-in a thickly packed and remote comer of the huge chamber.
The portal probably had been long forgotten by the priests of the library,
allowing Barjin easy and secret access.
Barjin's
delight diminished considerably when he worked his way far enough around the
room to cast some detection spells on the man. The same spells had been
ambiguous on the groundskeeper- Barjin had not known for certain whether the
old wretch would suffice until the warding glyphs had blown him back from the
bottle, but the spells were not so ambiguous concerning Kierkan Rufo. This man
was not possessed of innocence and would have no more luck with the magic
bottle than did the groundskeeper.
"Hypocrite,"
Barjin grumbled silently. He rested back in the shadows and wondered how he
might still find some use for the angular man. Certainly visitors to the wine
cellar were not commonplace and Barjin could not allow anyone to pass through
without extracting some benefit.
He was
still contemplating things when a second priest unexpectedly came skipping down
the stairwell. Barjin watched curiously as this smiling young man, hair
bouncing about his shoulders under a wide-brimmed hat, moved to confer with the
angular worker. Barjin's detection spells had not yet expired and when he
focused on this newest arrival, his curiosity turned to delight.
Here
was his catalyst.
He
watched a bit longer-long enough to discern that there was some tension between
the two-then sneaked back to the concealed door. He knew that his next critical
moves must be planned carefully.
* * * *
*
"Should
we work together?" Cadderly offered in an exaggerated, bubbly voice.
Kierkan
Rufo glared at him. "Have you any tricks planned for me now?" he
asked. "Any new baubles to show off at my expense?"
"Are
you saying that you did not deserve it?" Cadderly asked. "You started
the battle when you brought Avery to my room."
"Pity
the mighty scribe," came the sarcastic reply.
Cadderly
started to respond, but held his tongue. He sympathized with Rufo, truly an
attentive priest. Cadderly knew that the headmasters had pushed Rufo aside
after Cadderly's success with the wizard's spellbook. The wound was too fresh
to mend it here, Cadderly knew, and neither he nor Rufo had any desire to work
together.
Rufo
explained his logging system for the inventory so that their lists might be
compatible. Cadderly saw several possibilities for improvement but again said
nothing. "Do you understand?" Rufo asked, handing Cadderly a counting
chart
Cadderly
nodded. "A good system," he offered.
Rufo
briskly waved him away, then continued his inventory, working his way slowly
around the long and shadowy racks.
A flash
of light in a distant comer caught the angular man's attention, but it was gone
as fast as it had appeared. Rufo cocked his head, took up his torch, and inched
his way over. A wall of casks confronted him, but he noticed an opening around
to the side.
"Is
anyone there?" Rufo asked, a bit nervously. Torch leading the way, he
peeked into the opening and saw the ancient portal.
"What
is it?" came a voice behind him. Rufo jumped in surprise, dropped his
torch at his feet, and upset a cask as he danced away from the flames. He was
not comforted when the crashing had ended and he looked back into Cadderly's
grinning face.
"It
is a door," Rufo replied through gritted teeth.
Cadderly
picked up the torch and peered in. "Now where might that lead?" he
asked rhetorically.
"It
is none of our concern," Rufo said firmly.
"
Of course it is," Cadderly retorted. "It is part of the library and
the library is our concern."
"We
must tell a headmaster and let him decide the proper way to investigate
it," Rufo offered. "Now give me the torch."
Cadderly
ignored him and advanced to the small wooden portal. It opened easily,
revealing a descending stairway, and Cadderly was surprised and delighted once
more.
"You
surely will get us into even more trouble!" Rufo complained at his back.
"Do you wish to count and clean until your hundredth birthday?"
"To
the lowest levels?" Cadderly said excitedly, ignoring the warning. He
looked back at Rufo, his face glowing brightly in the near torchlight.
The
nervous Rufo backed away from the weirdly shadowed specter. He seemed not to
understand Percival companion's excitement.
"The
lowest levels," Cadderly repeated as though those words should hold some
significance. "When the library was originally built, most of it was below
ground. The Snowflakes were wilder back then, and the founders thought an
underground complex more easily defended. The lowest catacombs were abandoned
as the mountains were tamed and the building expanded, and eventually it was
believed that all the exits had been sealed." He looked back to the
enticing stair. "Apparently that was not the case."
"Then
we must tell a headmaster," Rufo declared nervously. "It is not our
place to investigate hidden doorways."
Cadderly
shot him an incredulous stare, hardly believing the man to be so childish.
"We will tell them," the young scholar agreed, poking his head
through the dusty opening. "In time."
* * * *
*
A short
distance away, Barjin watched the two men with nervous anticipation, one hand
holding tight to the security of his cruel mace. The evil priest knew that he
had taken quite a chance in calling up the magical light signaling the portal's
location. If the two men decided to go and tell their masters, Barjin would
have to intercept them-forcefully. But Barjin had never been patient, which was
why he had come directly to the Edificant Library in the first place. There was
a degree of danger in his gamble, both in coming here and in revealing the
door, but the potential gains of both actions could not be ignored. If these
two decided to explore, then Barjin would be one giant step closer to realizing
his desires.
They
disappeared from sight around the barricading casks, so Barjin crept closer.
"The
stairs are fairly solid, though they are ancient," he heard Cadderly call
back, "and they go down a long, long way."
Appearing
skeptical, even afraid, the angular priest slowly backed out of the concealed
area. "The headmaster," he muttered softly and turned abruptly for
the stairs.
Barjin
stepped out before him.
Before
Rufo could even cry out, the evil priest's spell fell over him. Rufo's gaze
locked fast to the evil priest's dark eyes, held in place by Barjin's hypnotic
stare. In his studies of wizardry, charms had always been the charismatic
Barjin's strength. His adoption of Talona had not diminished that touch, though
the Lady of Poison's clerics were not normally adept at such magic, and Kierkan
Rufo was not a difficult opponent.
Nor
were Barjin's magically enhanced suggestions to the enthralled Rufo contrary to
the angular man's deepest desires.
* * * *
*
Cadderly
creeped slowly toward the open door, never taking Percival gaze from the
enticing blackness beyond the meager limits of Percival torchlight. What
wonders remained down there in the oldest rooms of the Edificant Library? he
wondered. What secrets long forgotten about the founders and initial scholars?
"We
should investigate-we'll be working down here for many days," Cadderly
said, leaning forward and peering over the stairs. "No one would have to
know until we decided to tell them."
Despite
his consuming curiosity for the mysteries before him, Cadderly kept enough wits
about him to realize that he had been betrayed as soon as he felt a boot
against His lower back. He grabbed the flimsy railing, but the wood broke away
in his hand. He managed to look back for just an instant and saw Rufo crouched
in the low doorway, a weird, emotionless expression on his dark and hollowed
face.
Cadderly's
torch flew away, and he tumbled into the blackness, bouncing down the stairs
and coming to rest heavily on the stone floor below. All the world fell into
blackness; he did not hear the door close above him.
* * * *
*
Kierkan
Rufo went right from the wine cellar to his room that night, wanting to
confront no one and respond to no questions. The recent events were but a blur
to the charmed man. He vaguely remembered what he had done to Cadderly, though
he couldn't be certain if it had been real or a dream. He remembered, too,
closing and blocking off the hidden door. There was something else, or someone
else, though, in the picture, hovering off to the side in the shadows just out
of reach of Rufo's consciousness.
Try as
he may, poor Rufo could not remember anything about Barjin, as a result of the
enchanting priest's devious instructions. In the back of his mind, Rufo
retained the strange sensation that he had made a friend this night, one who
understood his frustrations and who agreed that Cadderly was an unworthy man.
Barjin's
World
Cadderly
awoke in utter darkness; he could not see his hand if he waved his fingers just
an inch in front of his face. His other senses told him much, though. He could
smell the thick dust and feel the sticky lines of cobwebs hanging all about.
"Rufo!"
he called, but his voice carried nowhere in the dead air, just reminded him
that he was alone in the dark. He crawled to his knees and found that he was
sore in a dozen places, particularly on the side of his head, and that his
tunic was crusted as if with dried blood. His torch lay beside Mm, but in
pawing about it, Cadderly realized that it had expired many hours before.
Cadderly
snapped his fingers, then reached down to his belt. A moment later, he popped
the cap from a cylindrical tube and a ray of light cut through the darkness.
Even to Cadderly, the light seemed an intruder in these corridors, which had
known only darkness for centuries uncounted. A dozen small creatures scuttled
away on the edges of Cadderly's vision, just out of the light. Better to have
them scurry away, Cadderly thought, than to have them lay in wait in the
darkness for him to pass.
Cadderly
examined his immediate surroundings with the light tube's aperture wide open,
mostly focusing on the shattered stairway beside him. Several stairs remained
attached at the top, near the closed door, but most of the boards lay scattered
about, apparently shattered by Cadderly's heavy descent. No easy path back that
way, he told himself, and he narrowed the beam to see down the greater
distances. He was in a corridor, one of many crisscrossing and weaving together
to form a honeycomb-type maze, judging from the many passages lining both
walls. The supporting arches were similar to those of the library above, but,
being an earlier architectural design, they were even thicker and lower, and
seemed lower still covered with layers of dust, hanging webs, and promises of
crawly things.
When
Cadderly took the time to examine himself, he saw that his tunic was, as he
expected, crusted with his own blood. He noticed a broken board lying next to
him, sharply splintered and darkly stained. Tentatively, the young priest
unbuttoned his tunic and pulled it aside, expecting a garish wound.
What he
found instead was a scab and a bruise. Although the more dutiful priests of
Deneir, even those Cadderly's age, were accomplished healers, Cadderly was
hardly practiced in the medicinal arts. He could tell, though, by the stains on
the splintered board that his wound had been deep and it was obvious from his
soaked shirt alone that he had lost quite a bit of blood. The wound was
undeniably on the mend, though, and if it once had been serious, it was not
now.
"Rufo?"
Cadderly called again, wondering if his companion had come down behind him and
healed him. There was no answer, not a sound in the dusty corridor. "If
not Rufo, then who?" Cadderly asked himself softly. He shrugged his
shoulders a moment later; the riddle was quite beyond him.
"Young
and strong," Cadderly congratulated himself having no other answer. He
stretched the rest of his aches out and finished his survey of the area, wondering
if there might be some way to reconstruct enough of the stairway to get back
near the door. He set his light tube on the floor and pieced together some
boards. The wood was terribly deteriorated and smashed beyond repair-too much
so, Cadderly thought, to have been caused just by his fall. Several pieces were
no more than splinters, as though they had been battered repeatedly.
After a
short while, Cadderly gave up the idea of going back through the wine cellar.
The old, rotted wood would never support his weight even if he could find some
way to piece it back together. "It could be worse," he whispered
aloud, picking up his light tube and taking his spindle-disks from a pouch. He
took a deep breath to steady himself and started off-any way seemed as good as
another.
Crawling
things darted to dark holes on the perimeter of the light beam and a shudder
coursed along Cadderly's spine as he imagined again what this journey might be
like in darkness.
The
walls were of brickwork in most of the passages, crushed under uncountable
tonnage and cracked in many places. Bas-reliefs had worn away, the lines of an
artist's chisel filled in by the dust of centuries, the fine detail of
sculptures replaced by the artwork of spiderwebs. Somewhere in the dark
distance, Cadderly heard the drip of water, a dull and dead thump-thump.
"The heartbeat of the catacombs," Cadderly muttered grimly, and the
thought did not comfort him.
He
wandered for many minutes, trying to formulate some logical scheme for
conquering the tunnel layout. While the builders of the original library had
been an orderly group and had carefully thought out the catacomb design, the
initial purposes, and courses, of the various tunnels had been adapted over the
decades to fit the changing needs of the structure above.
Every
time Cadderly thought he had some sense of where he might be, the next comer
showed him differently. He moved along one low and wide corridor, taking care
to keep away from the rotting crates lining the walls. If this was the storage area,
he reasoned, there might be an outside exit nearby, a tunnel large enough for
wagons, perhaps.
The
corridor ended at a wide arch that fanned out diagonally under two smaller
arches to the left and the right. These were congested by webs so thick that
Cadderly had to retrieve a plank from the crates just to poke his way through.
The
passages beyond the arched intersection were identical, layered stonework and
only half as wide as the corridor he had just traveled. His instinct told him
to go left, but it was just a guess, for in the winding ways Cadderly really
had little idea of where he was in relation to the buildings above him.
He kept
his pace swift, following the narrow beam faithfully and trying to ignore the
rat squeaks and imagined perils to the sides and behind him. His fears were
persistent, though, and each step came with more effort. He shifted the beam
from side to side and saw that this passage's walls were lined with dark holes,
alcoves. Hiding places, Cadderly imagined, for crouched monsters.
Cadderly
turned slowly, bringing his light to bear, and realized that in his narrow
focus on the path ahead, he had crossed the first few sets of these alcoves. A
shudder ran through his spine, for he figured out the purpose of the alcoves
before his light ever angled properly for him to see inside one.
Cadderly
jumped back. The distant thump-thump of the catacomb heartbeat remained steady,
but the young scholar's own heart missed a few beats, for the beam of light
fell upon a seated skeleton just a few feet to Cadderly's side. If this passage
had been intended for storage, its goods were macabre indeed! Where once may
have been stored crates of food, now there was only food for the carrion
eaters. Cadderly had entered the crypts, he knew, the burial vaults for the
earliest scholars of the Edificant Library.
The
skeleton sat impassive and oblivious in its tattered shroud, hand bones crossed
over its lap. Webs extended from a dozen angles in the small alcove, seeming to
support the skeleton in its upright posture.
Cadderly
sublimated his mounting terror, reminded himself that these were simply natural
remains, the remains of great men, good-hearted and thinking men, and that he,
too, one day would resemble the skeleton seated before him. He looked back and
counted four alcoves on either side of the corridor behind him and considered
whether he should turn back.
Stubbornly,
Cadderly dismissed all his fears as irrational and focused again on the path
before Mm. He kept his light in the middle of the passage, not wanting to look
into any more of the alcoves, not wanting to test his determination any
further.
But his
eyes inevitably glanced to the side, to the hushed darkness. He imagined
skeletal heads turning slowly to watch him pass.
Some
fears were not so easily conquered.
A
scuffle behind and to his left spun Cadderly about, his spindle-disks at the
ready. His defensive reflexes launched the weapon before his mind could
register the source of the noise: a small rat crawling across a wobbling skull.
The
rodent flew away into webs and darkness when the disks struck full on the
skull's forehead. The wobbly skull flew, too, rebounding off the alcove's back
wall, rolling down the front of its former possessor, and coming to a rattling
stop between the seated skeleton's legs.
A
chuckle burst from Cadderly's mouth, relieved laughter at his own cowardice.
The sound died away quickly as the dusty stillness reclaimed the ancient
passage, and Cadderly relaxed ... until
the skeleton reached down between its legs and retrieved its fallen head.
Cadderly
stumbled backward against the opposite wall-and promptly felt a bony grip on
his elbow. He tore away, snapped his spindle-disks in at this newest foe, and
turned to flee, not pausing to note the damage his weapon had exacted. As his
light swung about, though, Cadderly saw that the skeletons he had passed had
risen and congregated in the corridor, and were now advancing, their faces
locked in lipless grins, their arms outstretched as though they desired to pull
Cadderly fully into their dark realm.
He had
only one path open and he went with all speed, trying to keep his eyes ahead,
trying to ignore the rattling of still more skeletons rising from every alcove
he passed. He could only hope that no monstrous spiders were nearby as he
charged right through another heavily webbed archway, tasting webs and spitting
them out in disgust. He stumbled and fell more than once but always scrambled
back to his feet, running blindly, knowing not where he should run, only what
he must keep behind him.
More
passages. More crypts. The rattling mounted behind him and he heard again,
startlingly clear, the thump-thump water-drop heartbeat of the catacombs. He
burst through another webbed archway, and then another, then came to a
three-way intersection. He turned to the left but saw that the skeletons down
that passage had already risen to block his way.
To the
right he ran, too afraid to sort out any patterns, too distracted to realize
that he was being herded.
He came
to another low archway, noted that this one had no webs, but hadn't the time to
pause and consider the implications. He was in a wider, higher passage, a
grander hall, and saw that the alcoves here were filled not by raggedly
shrouded skeletons, but by standing sarcophagi, exquisitely detailed and gilded
in precious metals and gemstones.
Cadderly
only noticed them for a moment, for down at the end of the long hallway he saw
light-not daylight, which he would have welcomed with open arms, but light nonetheless-peeking
out at him from the cracks and loosened seals of an ancient door.
The
rattling intensified, booming all about him. An eerie red mist appeared at
Cadderly's feet, following his progress, adding a surreal and dreamlike
quality. Reality and nightmare bat-tied in Percival rushing thoughts, reason
fighting fear.
The
resolution to that battle lay in the light, Cadderly knew.
The
young scholar staggered forward, his feet dragging as though the mist itself
weighed heavily upon them. He lowered his shoulder, meaning to push right
through the door, to charge right into the light.
The
door squeaked open just before he collided, and he stumbled in, sinking down to
his knees on the clean floor within. Then the door swung closed of its own
accord, leaving the red mist and the macabre rattle out in the darkness.
Cadderly remained very still for a long moment, confused and trying to slow his
racing heart.
After a
moment, Cadderly rose shakily to survey the room, hardly even registering that
the door had closed behind him. He was struck by the cleanliness of this room,
so out of place in the rest of the dungeons. He recognized the place as a
former study hall; it was similar in design and contained similar furniture to
those studies still in use in the library proper. Several small cabinets,
worktables, and free-standing two-sided bookcases sat at regular intervals
about the room, and a brazier rested on a tripod along the right-hand wall.
Torches burned in two sconces, and the walls were lined with bookshelves, empty
except for a few scattered parchments, yellow with age, and an occasional small
sculpture, once a book end, perhaps. Cadderly's gaze went to the brazier first,
thinking it oddly out of place, but it was the display in the center that
ultimately commanded Percival attention.
A long
and narrow table had been placed there, with a purple and crimson blanket
spread over it and hanging down the front and sides. Atop the table was a
podium, and on this sat a clear bottle sealed with a large cork and filled with
some red-glowing substance. In front of the bottle was a silvery bowl, platinum
perhaps, intricately designed and covered with strange runes.
Cadderly
was hardly surprised, or alarmed, at the blue mist he noted covering the floors
and swirling about his legs. This entire adventure had taken on a blurry
feeling of unreality to him. Rationally, he could tell himself that he was wide
awake, but the dull ache on the side of his skull made him wonder just how
badly he had banged his head. Whatever this was, though, Cadderly was now more
intrigued than afraid, so, with great effort, he forced himself to this feet
and took a cautious step toward the central table.
There
were designs, tridents capped by three bottles, woven into the blanket. He
noticed that the bottles of the designs were similar to the real one atop the
table. Cadderly thought he knew most of the major holy symbols and alliance
crests of the central Realms, but this was totally foreign. He wished he had
prepared some spells that might reveal more of the strange altar, if it was an
altar. Cadderly smiled at his own ineptitude. He rarely prepared any spells at
all, and even when he took the time, his accomplishments with clerical magic
were far from highly regarded. Cadderly was more scholar than priest, and he
viewed his vows to Deneir more as an agreement of attitude and priorities than
a pledge of devotion.
As he
approached the table, he saw that the silvery bowl was filled with a clear
liquid-probably water, though Cadderly did not dare dip his fingers into it.
More intrigued by the glowing bottle behind it, Cadderly meant to pay it little
heed at all, but the reflection of the flask in that strange rune-covered bowl
captured his attention suddenly and for some reason would not let go.
Cadderly
felt himself drawn toward that reflected image. He moved right up to the bowl
and bent low, his face nearly touching the liquid. Then, as if a tiny pebble
had fallen into the bowl, little circular ripples rolled out from the exact
center. Far from breaking Cadderly's concentration on the reflection, the
watery dance only enhanced it. The light bounced and rolled around the tiny
waves and the image of the bottle elongated and bent, side to side.
Cadderly
knew somehow that the water was pleasantly warm. He wanted to immerse himself
in the bowl, to silence all the noises of the world around him in watery
stillness and feel nothing but the warmth.
Still there was the image, swaying
enticingly, capturing Cadderly's thoughts.
Cadderly
looked up from the bowl to the bottle. Somewhere deep inside him he knew that
something was amiss and that he should resist the strangely comforting
sensations. Inanimate objects were not supposed to offer suggestions.
Open
the bottle, came a call within his head. He did not recognize the soothing
voice, but it promised only pleasure. Open the bottle.
Before
he realized what he was doing, Cadderly had the bottle in his hands. He had no
idea what the bottle truly was, or how and why this unknown altar had been set
up. There was a danger here-Cadderly sensed it-but he could not sort it out
clearly; the ripples in the silvery bowl had been so enthralling.
Open
the bottle, came the quiet suggestion a third time. Cadderly simply could not
determine whether or not he should resist and that indecision weakened his
resolve. The cork stopper was stubborn, but not overly so, and it came out with
a loud romp.
That
pop cut through the smoky confusion in the young scholar's brain, rang out like
a clarion call of reality, warning Mm of the risk he had taken, but it was too
late.
Red
smoke poured out of the flask, engulfing Cadderly and spreading to fill the
room. Cadderly realized his error at once and he moved to replace the cork, but
watching from behind the cabinet, an unseen enemy was already at work.
"Hold!"
came an undeniable command from the side of the room.
Cadderly
had the cork almost back to the bottle when his hands stopped moving. Still the
smoke poured out. Cadderly could not react, could not move at all, could not
even make his eyes look away. His whole body grew weirdly numb, tingled in the
grasp of a magical grip. A moment later, Cadderly saw a hand reach around Mm
but did not even feel the bottle being pried from his grasp. He then was
forcefully turned about to face a man he did not know.
The man was waving and chanting, though
Cadderly could not hear the words. He recognized the movements as some sort of
spellcasting and knew that he was in dire peril. His mind struggled against the
paralysis that had overcome him.
It was
a futile effort.
Cadderly
felt his eyes drooping. The sensations suddenly came rushing back to his limbs,
but all the world grew dark around him and he felt himself falling, forever
falling.
* * * *
*
"Come,
groundskeeper," Barjin called. From out of the same cabinet in which
Barjin had hidden came Mullivy's pallid corpse.
Barjin
spent a moment inspecting his latest victim. Cadderly's light tube and
spindle-disks, along with a dozen other curiosities, intrigued the priest, but
Barjin quickly dismissed the idea of taking anything. He had used the same
spell of forgetfulness on this man as he had on the tall, angular man back in
the wine cellar. Barjin knew that this man, unlike the other, was strong of
mind and will, and would unconsciously battle such a spell. Missing items might
aid his fight to regain the blocked parts of his memory, and for the priest,
alone and beneath a virtual army of enemies, that could prove disastrous.
Barjin
dropped a hand to his hungry mace. Perhaps he should kill this one now, add
this young priest to his undead army so that he would bring Barjin no trouble
in the future. The evil priest dismissed the idea as quickly as it had come to
him; his goddess, a deity of chaos, would not approve of eliminating the excruciating
irony. This man had served as catalyst for the curse; let him see the
destruction wrought of his own hands!
"Bring
him," Barjin instructed, dropping Cadderly to his zombie. With one stiff
arm and little effort, Mullivy lifted Cadderly from the floor.
"And
bring the old ladder," Barjin added. "We must get back up to the wine
cellar. We have much work to do before the dawn."
Barjin
wrung his hands with mounting excitement. The primary component of the ritual
had been executed easily; all that remained to complete the curse, to fully
loose the Most Fatal Horror upon the Edificant Library, were a few minor
ceremonies.
The
Puzzle
Danica
knew by the approaching headmaster's expression, and by the fact that Kierkan
Rufo shuffled along at Avery's heels, that Cadderly had done something wrong
again. She pushed away the book she was reading and folded her arms on the
table in front of her.
Avery,
normally polite to guests of the library, came quickly and bluntly to his
point. "Where is he?" the headmaster demanded.
"He?"
Danica replied. She knew perfectly well that Avery was referring to Cadderly,
but she didn't appreciate the headmaster's tone.
"You
know ..." Avery began loudly, but
then he realized Danica's objections and caught himself, looked around, and
blushed with embarrassment.
"I
am sorry. Lady Danica," he apologized sincerely. "I had only
thought... I mean, you and ..." He
stomped hard with one foot to steady himself and proclaimed, "That
Cadderly frustrates me so!"
Danica accepted the apology with a grin and a
nod, understanding, even sympathizing, with Avery's feelings. Cadderly was an
easily distracted free spirit, and, like most formal religious organizations,
the Order of Deneir was firmly based on discipline. It was not a difficult task
for Danica to remember just a few of the many times she had waited for Cadderly
at an appointed place and time, only to eventually give up and go back to her
chambers alone, cursing the day she ever saw his boyish smile and inquisitive
eyes.
For all
her frustrations, though, the young woman could not deny the pangs in her heart
whenever she looked upon Cadderly. Her smile only widened as she thought of him
now, flying in the face of Avery's bubbling anger. As soon as Danica turned her
attention back to the present and looked over Avery's shoulder, though, her
grin disappeared. There stood Kierkan Rufo, leaning slightly to one side, as
always, but wearing a mask of concern rather than the normally smug expression
he displayed whenever he had one-upped his rival.
Danica
locked stares with the man, her unconscious grimace revealing her true feelings
toward him. She knew that he was Cadderly's friend-sort of-and she never spoke
out against him to Cadderly, but in her heart she didn't trust the man, not at
all.
Rufo
had made many advances on Danica, beginning on her very first day at the
Edificant Library, the first time the two had ever met. Danica was young and
pretty and not unused to such advances, but Rufo had unnerved her on that
occasion. When she had politely turned Rufo down, he just stood towering over
her, tilting his head and staring, for many minutes with that same frozen,
unblinking stare on his face. Danica didn't know exactly what it was that had
caused her to rebuff Rufo way back then, but she suspected it was his dark,
deep-set eyes. They showed the same inner light of intelligence as Cadderly's,
but if Cadderly's were inquisitive, then Rufo's were conniving. Cadderly's eyes
sparkled joyfully as if in search of answers to the uncounted mysteries of the
world.
Rufo's, too, collected information, but his,
Danica believed, searched for advantage.
Rufo
had never given up on Danica, even after her budding relationship with Cadderly
had become common talk in the library. Rufo still approached her often, and
still she sent him away, but sometimes she saw him, out of the comer of her
eye, sitting across the room and staring at her, studying her as though she
were some amusing book.
"Do
you know where he is?" Avery asked her, his tone more controlled.
"Who?"
Danica answered, hardly hearing the question.
"Cadderly!"
cried the flustered headmaster.
Danica
looked at him, surprised by the sudden outburst.
"Cadderly,"
Avery said again, regaining his composure. "Do you know where Cadderly
might be found?"
Danica
paused and considered the question and the look on Rufo's face, wondering if
she should be worried. As far as she knew, Avery was the one directing
Cadderly's movements.
"I
have not seen him this morning," she answered honestly. "I thought that
you had put him to work-in the wine cellar, by the words of the dwarven
brothers."
Avery
nodded. "So, too, did I believe, but it seems as if our dear Cadderly has
had enough of his labors. He did not report to me this morning, as he had been
instructed, nor was he in his room when I went to find him."
"Had
he been in his room at all this morning?" Danica asked. She found her gaze
again drawn to Kierkan Rufo, fearing for Cadderly and somehow guessing that if
trouble had befallen him, Rufo was involved.
Rufo's
reaction did not diminish her suspicions. He blinked-one of the few times
Danica had ever seen him blink-and tried hard to appear unconcerned as he
looked away.
"I
cannot say," Avery replied and he, too, turned to Rufo for some answers.
The
angular man only shrugged. "I left him in the wine cellar," he said.
"I was down there working long before he arrived. I thought it fitting
that I retire earlier than he."
Before
Avery could even suggest that they go search the wine cellar, Danica had pushed
past him and started on her way.
* * * *
*
The
darkness and the weight. Those were the two facts of Cadderly's predicament:
the darkness and the weight. And the pain. There was pain, too. He didn't know
where he was or how he had gotten to tins dark place or why he could not move.
He was lying face down on the stone floor, buried by something. He tried
calling out several times but found little breath.
Images
of walking skeletons and thick spiderwebs flitted about his consciousness as he
lay there, but they had no real definition, nor any solid place in his memory.
Somewhere-in a dream?-he had seen them, but whether that place had anything to
do with this place, he could not guess.
Then he
saw the flicker of torchlight, far away but coming down toward him, and as the
shadows revealed tall and open racks, he at last recognized his surroundings.
"The
wine cellar," Cadderly grunted, though the effort sorely hurt.
"Rufo?" It was all a blur. He remembered coming down from the kitchen
to join Rufo in his inventory, and remembered beginning his work, away from the
angular man, but that was all. Something obviously had happened subsequent to
that, but Cadderly had no recollection of it, or of how he might possibly have
gotten in his current predicament.
"Cadderly?"
came a call, Danica's voice. Not one, but three torches had entered the large
wine cellar.
"Here!"
Cadderly gasped with all his breath, though the wheeze was not nearly loud
enough to be heard. The torches fanned out in different directions, sometimes
disappearing from Cadderly's sight, other times flickering at regular intervals
as they moved behind the open, bottle-filled racks. All three bearers-Avery,
Rufo, and Danica, Cadderly realized- called out now.
"Here!"
he gasped as often as he could. Still, the cellar was wide and sectioned by
dozens of tall wine racks, and it was many minutes before Cadderly's call was
heard.
Kierkan
Rufo found him. The tall man seemed more ghastly than ever to Cadderly as he
looked up at the shadows splayed across Rufo's angular features. Rufo appeared
surprised to find Cadderly, then he glanced all about, as if undecided as to
how to react.
"Could
you ..." Cadderly began, and he paused to catch his breath. "Please
get... me ... get this off me."
Still
Rufo hesitated, confusion and concern crossing his face. "Over here,"
he called out finally. "I have found him."
Cadderly
didn't note much relief in Rufo's tone.
Rufo
laid his torch down and began removing the pile of casks that were pinning
Cadderly. Over his shoulder, Cadderly noticed Rufo tipping one heavy cask over
him, and the thought came to him for just an instant that the angular man had
tilted it purposely and meant to drop it on his head. Then Danica came running
up, and she helped Rufo push it away.
All the
casks were cleared before Headmaster Avery ever got there, and Cadderly started
to rise.
Danica
held him down. "Do not move!" she instructed firmly. Her expression
was grave, her brown almond eyes intense and uncompromising. "Not until I
have inspected your wounds."
"I
am all right," Cadderly tried to insist, but he knew his words fell on
deaf ears. Danica had been scared, and the stubborn woman rarely bothered to
argue when she was scared. Cadderly tried halfheartedly to rise again, but this
time Danica's strong hand stopped him, pressing on a particularly vulnerable
area on the back of his neck.
"I
have ways of stopping you from struggling," Danica promised, and Cadderly
didn't doubt her. He put his cheek down on folded arms and let Danica have her
way.
"How
did this happen?" demanded the chubby, red-faced Avery, huffing up to join
them.
"He
was counting bottles when I left," Rufo offered nervously.
Cadderly's
face crinkled in confusion as he tried again to sort through the blur of his
memories. He got the uncomfortable feeling that Rufo expected his explanation
to sound like an accusation, and Cadderly himself wondered what part Rufo might
have had in his troubles. A feeling of something hard-a boot?-against his back
slipped past him too quickly to make any sense.
"I
know not," Cadderly answered honestly. "I just cannot remember. I was
counting ..." He stopped there and
shook his head in frustration. Cadderly's existence depended on knowledge; he
didn't like illogical puzzles.
"And
you wandered away," Avery finished for him. "You went exploring when
you should have been working."
"The
wounds are not too severe," Danica cut in suddenly.
Cadderly
knew that she had purposely deflected the headmaster's rising agitation, and he
smiled his thanks as Danica helped him to his feet. It felt good to be standing
again, though Cadderly had to lean on Danica for support for several minutes.
Somehow
Avery's supposition didn't fit into Cadderly's memories-whatever they might be.
He did not believe that he had just "wandered away" to fall into
trouble. "No," he declared. "Not like that. There was something
here." He looked at Danica, then to Rufo. "A light?"
Hearing
the word triggered another memory for Cadderly. "The door!" he cried
suddenly.
If the
torchlight had been stronger, they all would have noticed the blood drain from
Kierkan Rufo's face.
"The
door," Cadderly said again. "Behind the wall of casks."
"What
door?" Avery demanded.
Cadderly
paused and thought for a moment but had no answers. His considerable willpower
subconsciously battled Barjin's memory blocking spell, but all he could
remember was the door, some door, somewhere. And wherever that portal might
have led, Cadderly could only guess. He resolved to find out again, as soon as
he rounded the casks and opened it.
It was
gone.
Cadderly
stood for a long while, staring at the dusty bricks of the solid wall.
"What
door?" the impatient headmaster asked again.
"It
was here," Cadderly insisted with as much conviction as he could muster.
He moved closer to the wall and felt it. That, too, proved futile. "I
remember. .." Cadderly started to protest. He felt an arm reach under his
shoulder.
"You
have been hurt in the head," Danica said quietly. "Confusion is not
unexpected after such a blow, nor usually lasting," she added quickly to
comfort him.
"No,
no," Cadderly protested, but he let Danica lead him out.
"What
door?" the flustered Avery asked a third time.
"He
has hurt his head," Danica interjected.
"I
thought ..." Cadderly began.
"It must have been a dream-" he looked at Avery directly "-but
what a strange dream."
Rufo's
sigh was audible. "He is not hurt too badly?" the tall man asked
embarrassedly when curious expressions turned toward him.
"Not
too badly," replied Danica, the tone of her voice indicating her
suspicions.
Cadderly
hardly noticed, too engrossed was he with trying to remember. "What would
be below here?" he asked on impulse.
"Nothing
to concern you," Avery replied sharply.
Skeletons
walked intangibly through Cadderly's subconscious again. "Crypts?" he
asked.
"Nothing
to concern you!" Avery answered sternly. "I grow tired of your
curiosity, brother."
Cadderly, too, was annoyed, not enjoying the
puzzles within his own mind. Avery's glare was uncompromising, but Cadderly was
too upset to be scared off. "Sssh!" he hissed sarcastically, putting
a finger to his pursed lips. "You would not want Deneir, whose edict is
the seeking of knowledge, to hear you say that."
Avery's
face turned so red that Cadderly almost expected it to burst. "Go and see
the healers " the headmaster growled at Cadderly, "then come back to
see me. I have a thousand tasks prepared for you." He spun about and
stormed away, Rufo dose on his heels, though all the way to the stairs, Rufo kept
glancing back over his shoulder.
Danica
gave Cadderly a forceful nudge-and a painful one against his sorely bruised
ribs. "You never know when to hold your tongue," she scolded.
"If you keep talking so to Headmaster Avery, we will never find the
opportunity to see each other!" With her torch in one hand and her other
wrapped about Cadderly's back, she pulled him roughly toward the distant
stairs.
Cadderly
looked down at her, thinking that he owed her an apology, but he saw that
Danica was biting back laughter and he realized that she hadn't truly
disapproved of his sarcasm.
* * * *
*
Barjin
watched the steady stream of reddish smoke rise from the opened flask and slip
into cracks in the ceiling, making its way up into the library above. The evil
priest still had several ceremonies to perform to complete the formal ritual,
as agreed upon back in Castle Trinity, but these were merely a formality. The
Most Fatal Horror had been released, and the chaos curse was under way.
It
would take longer to exact a toll here, Barjin knew, than it had with Haverly
back at Castle Trinity. According to Aballister, Haverly had taken a
concentrated dose right in the face. Producing the elixir was far too expensive
to duplicate those
effects on enemy after enemy, thus the
mixture in the ever-smoking bottle had been greatly diluted. The priests here
would absorb the elixir gradually, each hour bringing them closer to the edge
of doom. Barjin held no reservations, though. He believed in the powers of the
elixir, in the powers of his goddess-particularly with himself serving as her
agent.
"Let
us see how these pious fools behave when their truest emotions are
revealed," he snickered to Mullivy. The zombie did not respond, of course.
He just stood very still, unblinking and unmoving. Barjin gave him a sour look
and turned his gaze back to the ever-smoking bottle.
"The
next days will be the most dangerous," he whispered to himself.
"Beyond that, the priests will have no power to stand against me." He
looked back to Mullivy and grinned wickedly.
"'We
will be ready," Barjin promised. He already had animated dozens of
skeletons and had enacted further spells upon Mullivy's corpse to strengthen
it. And, of course, there was Khalif, Barjin's prized soldier, awaiting the
priest's command from the sarcophagus just outside the altar room door.
Barjin
meant to add new and more horrible monsters to his growing army. First, he
would uncover the necromancer's stone and see what undead allies it might bring
in. Then, taking Aballister's advice, he would open a gate to the least of the
lower planes, summoning minor monsters to serve as advisers and scouts for his
expanding evil network.
"Let
the foolish priests come after us," Barjin said, taking an ancient and
evil tome, a book of sorcery and necromancy, out of the folds of his robes.
"Let them see the horror that has befallen them!"
Oddities
Cadderly
sat before his open window, watching the dawn and feeding Percival
cacasa-nut-and-butter biscuits. The Shining Plains lived up to their name this
morning, with dew-speckled grass catching the morning sunlight and throwing it
back to the sky in a dazzling dance. The sun climbed higher and the line of
brightness moved up into the foothills of the Snowflake Mountains. Pockets of
darkness, valleys, dotted the region and a wispy mist rose to the south, from
the valley of the Impresk River, feeding the wide lake to the east.
"Ow!"
Cadderly cried, pulling his hand away from the hungry squirrel. Percival had
gotten a bit too eager, nipping through the biscuit and into Cadderly's palm.
Cadderly pinched the wound between his thumb and forefinger to stem the blood
flow.
Busily
licking the last of the cacasa-nut from his paws, Percival hardly seemed to
notice Cadderly's discomfort.
"It
is my own fault, I suppose," Cadderly admitted. "I cannot expect you
to behave rationally when there is cacasa-nut and butter to be won!"
Percival's
tail twitched excitedly, but that was the only indication Cadderly had that the
squirrel was even listening. The young man turned his attention again to the
world outside. The daylight had reached the library, and though Cadderly had to
squint against its fresh brightness, it felt warm and wonderful upon his face.
"It
will be another beautiful day," he remarked, and even as he spoke the words,
he realized that he probably would spend the whole of it in the dark and dreary
wine cellar, or in some other hole that Headmaster Avery found for him.
"Perhaps
I can trick him into letting me tend the grounds this morning," Cadderly
said to the squirrel. "I could help old Mullivy."
Percival
chattered excitedly at the mention of the groundskeeper.
"I
know," Cadderly offered comfortingly. "You do not like Mullivy."
Cadderly shrugged and smiled, remembering the time he had seen the crooked old
groundskeeper waving a rake and spitting threats at the tree that Percival and
other squirrels were sitting in, complaining about the mess of acorn husks all
over his freshly raked ground.
"Here
you go, Percival," Cadderly said, pushing the rest of the biscuit to the
windowsill. "I have many things to attend to before Avery catches up with
me." He left Percival sitting on the sill, and the squirrel went on
munching and crunching and licking his paws, and basking in the warm daylight,
apparently having already dismissed any uneasiness at the mention of Mullivy.
* * * *
*
"Ye're
bats!" Ivan yelled. "Ye can't be one of them!"
"Doo-dad!"
Pikel replied indignantly.
"Ye
think they'd have ye?" Ivan roared. "Tell him, boy!" he cried at
Cadderly, who had just entered the kitchen. "Tell the fool that dwarves
can't be druids!"
"You
want to be a druid?" Cadderly asked with interest.
"Oo
oi!" piped a happy Pikel. "Doo-dad!"
Ivan
had heard enough. He hoisted a frying pan-dumping its half-cooked eggs on the
floor-and heaved it at his brother. Pikel wasn't quick enough to get out of the
way of the missile, but he managed to bow into it, taking the blow on the top
of Percival head and suffering no serious damage.
Still
fuming, Ivan reached for another pan, but Cadderly grabbed his arm to stop him.
"Wait!" Cadderly pleaded.
Ivan
paused for just a moment, even whistled to show his patience, then cried,
"Long enough!" and pushed Cadderly to the floor. The dwarf hoisted
the pan and charged, but Pikel, now similarly armed, was ready for him.
Cadderly
had read many tales of valor describing the ring of iron on iron, but he had
never imagined the sound attributed to two dwarves sparring with frying pans.
Ivan
got the first strike in, a wicked smash to Pikel's forearm. Pikel grunted and
retaliated, slamming his pan straight down on top of Ivan's head.
Ivan
backed up a step, trying to stop his eyes from spinning. He looked to the side,
to a littered table, and was struck with a sudden inspiration, no doubt from
the head blow. Pikel returned his smile. "Pots?" Ivan asked.
Pikel
nodded eagerly and the two rushed to the table to find one that fit properly.
Food went flying everywhere, followed by pots that had proven too small or too
big. Then Ivan and Pikel faced off again, wielding their trusty pans and
helmeted in the cookware of last night's stew.
Cadderly
watched it all in blank amazement, not quite certain of how to take the
actions. It seemed a comedy at times, but the growing welts and bruises on Ivan
and Pikel's arms and faces told a different tale. Cadderly had seen the
brothers argue before, and certainly he had come to expect all sorts of strange
things from dwarves, but this was too wild, even for Ivan and Pikel.
"Stop it!" Cadderly yelled at them.
Pikel's answer came in the form of a hurled cleaver that narrowly missed
Cadderly's head and buried itself an inch deep in the oaken door beside him.
Cadderly stared in disbelief at the deadly instrument, still shuddering from
the force of Pikel's throw, and knew that something was terribly wrong here,
and terribly dangerous.
The
young priest didn't give up, though. He just redirected his efforts. "I
know a better way to fight!" he cried, moving cautiously toward the
dwarves.
"Eh?"
asked Pikel.
"Better
way?" Ivan added. "For fighting?"
Ivan
seemed already convinced- Pikel was winning the cookware battle-but Pikel only
used Ivan's ensuing hesitation to press him even harder. Pikel's pan hummed as
it dove in at a wide arc, smashing Ivan's elbow and knocking the yellow-bearded
dwarf off balance. Pikel recognized his dear advantage. His wicked pan went up
high again for a follow-up strike.
"Druids
do not fight with metal weapons!" Cadderly yelled.
"Oo,"
Pikel said, halting in midswing. The brothers looked at each other, shrugged
once, and tossed their pots and pans to the ground.
Cadderly
had to think quickly. He brushed off a section of the long table. "Sit
here," he instructed Ivan, pulling up a stool. "And you over
here," he said to Pikel, indicating a second seat across from Ivan.
"Put
the elbows of your right arms on the table," Cadderly explained.
"Arm-pulling?"
Ivan scoffed incredulously. "Get me back me pan!"
"No!"
Cadderly shouted. "No. This is a better way, a true test of
strength."
"Bah!"
snorted Ivan. "I'll clobber him!"
"Oh?"
said Pikel.
They
clasped hands roughly and started pulling before Cadderly could give any
signal, or even line them up. He considered them for a moment, wanting to stay
and see things through to conclusion, but the brothers were evenly matched,
Cadderly realized, and their contest might last a while. Cadderly heard other
priests shuffling by outside the open kitchen door; it was time for the midday
canticle. Whatever the emergency, Cadderly simply could not be late for the
required ceremony again. He watched the struggle a moment longer, to ensure
that the dwarves were fully engaged, then shook his head in confusion and
walked away. He had known Ivan and Pikel for more than a decade, since his
childhood days, and had never seen either one of them lift a fist at the other.
If that had not been bad enough, the cleaver, still wobbling in the door,
vividly proved that something was terribly out of sorts.
* * * *
*
Brother
Chaunticleer's voice rang out with its usual quality, filling the great hall
with perfect notes and filling the gathering of priests and scholars with
sincere pleasure, but those most observant among the group, Cadderly included,
glanced around at the crowd's reaction, as if they noticed something missing in
Chaunticleer's delivery. The key was perfect and the words correct, but there
seemed to be a lacking in the strength of the song.
Chaunticleer
didn't notice them. He performed as always, the same songs he had sung at
midday for several years. This time, though, unlike any of the others,
Chaunticleer was indeed distracted. His thoughts drifted down to the rivers in
the mountain foothills, still swollen from the winter melt and teeming with
trout and silver perch. It had always been said that fishing was second only to
singing in Brother Chaunticleer's heart. The priest was learning now that the
perceived order of his desires might not be so correct.
Then it
happened.
Brother
Chaunticleer forgot the words.
He
stood at the podium of the great hall, perplexed, as undeniable images of
rushing water and leaping fish added to his confusion and put the song farther
from his thoughts.
Whispers
sprang up throughout the hall; mouths dropped open in disbelief. Dean Thobicus,
never an excitable man, calmly moved up toward the podium. "Do go on.
Brother Chaunticleer," he said softly, soothingly.
Chaunticleer
could not continue. The song of Deneir was no match for the joyful sound of
leaping trout.
The
whispers turned to quiet giggles. Dean Thobicus waited a few moments, then whispered
into Headmaster Avery's ear, and Avery, obviously more shaken than his
superior, dismissed the gathering. He turned back to question Chaunticleer, but
the singing priest was already gone, running for his hook and line.
* * * *
*
Cadderly
used the confusion in the great hall to get out from under Avery's watchful
eye. He had spent a dreary morning scrubbing floors, but had completed the
tasks and was free, at least until Avery found him idle and issued new orders.
Avery was busy now, trying to figure out what had happened to Brother
Chaunticleer. If Cadderly correctly understood the gravity of Chaunticleer's
misfortunes, the headmaster would be busy with him for some time. Chaunticleer
was considered among the most devout priests in the order of Deneir, and his
highest duty, his only real priority, was the midday canticle.
Cadderly,
too, was concerned by the events at the ceremony, especially after his visit
with the dwarves that morning. More disturbing than Chaunticleer's problems
with the songs, Danica had not been at the canticle. She was not associated
with either the Oghman or Deneir sects and therefore not required to attend,
but she rarely missed the event, and never before without telling Cadderly that
she would not attend.
Even
more disquieting, Kierkan Rufo had not been in attendance.
Since
the main library was on the first floor and not far from the great hall,
Cadderly decided to begin his search there. He skipped along briskly, his pace
quickening as his suspicions continued to gnaw at him. A moaning sound from a
side corridor stopped him abruptly.
Cadderly
peeked around the comer to see Kierkan Rufo coming down the stairs, leaning
heavily on the wall. Rufo seemed barely coherent; his face was covered in blood
and he nearly toppled with each step.
"What
happened?" Cadderly asked, rushing to help the man.
A wild
light came into Rufo's eyes and he slapped Cadderly's reaching hands away. The
action cost the disoriented man his balance and he tumbled down the last few
steps to the floor.
The
manner in which Rufo fell revealed much to Cadderly. Rufo had reached out to
catch himself with one arm, the same arm he had used to slap at Cadderly, but
his other arm remained limp at his side, useless.
"Where
is she?" Cadderly demanded, suddenly very afraid. He grabbed Rufo by the
collar, despite the man's protests, and pulled him to his feet, viewing up
close the damage to his face. Blood continued to flow from Rufo's obviously
broken nose, and one of his eyes was swollen and purple and nearly closed. The
man had numerous other bruises, and the way he flinched when Cadderly
straightened him indicated other wounds in his abdomen or just a little bit
lower.
"Where
is she?" Cadderly said again.
Rufo
gritted his teeth and turned away.
Cadderly
forcibly turned him back. "What is wrong with you?" he demanded.
Rufo
spat in his face.
Cadderly
resisted the urge to strike out. There had always been tension in his
friendship with Rufo, an element of rivalry that had only heightened when
Danica came to the library. Cadderly, usually getting the upper hand with
Danica and the headmasters, realized that he often upset Rufo, but never before
had the tall man shown him any open hostility.
"If you hurt Danica, I will come back to
find you," Cadderly warned, though he thought that highly improbable. He
let go of Rufo's wet tunic and ran up the stairs.
Rufo's
blood trail led him to the south wing of the third floor, the library's guest
quarters. Despite his urgency, Cadderly stopped his tracking as he neared
Histra's room, for he heard cries emanating from within. At first Cadderly
thought the priestess of Sune to be in peril, but as he reached for the door
handle, he recognized the sounds as something other than pain.
Down
the hall he rushed, too worried to be embarrassed. The blood trail led to
Danica's door, as he had feared it would. He knocked loudly on the door and
called out, "Danica?"
No
answer.
Cadderly
banged more urgently. "Danica?" he yelled. "Are you in
there?"
Still
no answer.
Cadderly
lowered his shoulder and easily plowed through the unlocked door.
Danica
stood perfectly still in the middle of the small room on the thick carpet she
used for exercising. She held her open hands out in front of her, a meditative
pose, and she did not even acknowledge that someone had entered the room. Her
concentration was straight ahead, on a solid block of stone supported between
two sawhorses.
"Danica?"
Cadderly asked again. "Are you all right?" He moved over to her
tentatively.
Danica
turned her head, and her blank stare fell over him. "Of course," she
said. "Why would I not be?"
Her
blond locks were matted with sweat and her hands were caked in drying blood.
"I
just saw Kierkan Rufo," Cadderly remarked.
"As
did I," Danica said calmly.
"What
happened to him?"
"He
tried to put his hands where they did not belong," Danica said casually,
turning to stare back at the stone block. "I stopped him."
None of
it made any sense to Cadderly; Rufo had leered and stared, but had never been
foolish enough to make a move toward Danica. "Rufo attacked you?" he
asked.
Danica
laughed hysterically, and that, too, unnerved the young priest. "He tried
to touch me, I said."
Cadderly
scratched his head and looked around the room for some further clues as to what
had transpired. He still couldn't believe that Rufo would make an open advance
toward Danica, but even more remarkable had been Danica's response. She was a
controlled and disciplined warrior. Cadderly would never expect such overkill
as the beating she had apparently given Rufo.
"You
hurt him badly," Cadderly said, needing to hear Danica's explanation.
"He
will recover," was all that the woman replied.
Cadderly
grabbed her arm, meaning to turn her about to face him. Danica was too quick.
Her arm flicked back and forth, breaking the hold, then she snapped her hand
onto Cadderly's thumb and bent it backward, nearly driving him to his knees.
Her ensuing glare alone would have backed Cadderly away, and he honestly
believed that she would break his finger.
Then
Danica's look softened, as if she suddenly recognized the man at her side. She
released her grip on his thumb and grabbed around his head instead, pulling him
close. "Oh Cadderly!" she cried between kisses. "Did I hurt
you?"
Cadderly
pushed her back to arm's length and stared at her for a long while. She
appeared fine, except for Rufo's blood on her hands and a curious, urgent look
in her eyes.
"Have
you been drinking any wine?" Cadderly asked.
"Of
course not," Danica replied, surprised by the question. "You know
that I am allowed only one glass
..." Her voice trailed off as the hard glare returned.
"Are
you doubting my loyalty to oath?" she asked sharply.
Cadderly's
face crinkled in confusion.
"Let
go of me."
Her tone was serious, and when the stunned Cadderly
did not immediately respond, she accentuated her point. She and Cadderly were
only standing about two feet apart, but the limber monk kicked with her foot,
up between them, and waved it threateningly in Cadderly's face.
Cadderly
released her and fell back. "What is wrong with you?" he demanded.
Danica's
visage softened again.
"You
beat Rufo badly," Cadderly said. "If he made inappropriate
advances-"
"He
interrupted me!" Danica cut him off. "He ..." she looked to the block of stone, then back to
Cadderly, again glowering. "And now you are interrupting me."
Cadderly
wisely backed away. "I will go," he promised, studying the block,
"if you tell me what I am interrupting."
"I
am a true disciple of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn!" Danica cried as though
that answered everything.
"Of
course you are," said Cadderly.
His
agreement calmed Danica. "The time has come for Gigel Nugel," she
said, "Iron Skull, but I must not be interrupted in my
concentration!"
Cadderly
regarded the solid block for a moment-a block far larger than the one in the
sketch of Penpahg D'Ahn-then eyed Danica's delicate face, trying unsuccessfully
to digest the news. "You plan to smash that block with your head?"
"I
am a true disciple," Danica reiterated.
Cadderly
nearly swooned. "Do not," he begged, reaching for Danica.
Seeing
her impending reaction, Cadderly pulled his arms back and qualified his
statement. "Not yet," he pleaded. "This is a great event in the
history of the library. Dean Thobicus should be informed. We could make it a
public showing."
"This
is a private matter," Danica replied. "It is not a curiosity show for
the pleasures of unbelievers!"
"Unbelievers?"
Cadderly whispered, and at this strange moment he knew that the label fit him,
but for more reasons than his and Danica's differing faiths. He had to think
quickly. "But," he improvised, "surely the event must be
properly witnessed and recorded."
Danica
looked at him curiously.
"For
future disciples," Cadderly explained. "Who will come to study
Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn in a hundred years? Would that disciple not also
benefit from the practices and successes of Grandmistress Danica? You cannot be
selfish with this achievement. Surely that would not be in accord with Penpahg
D'Ahn's teachings."
Danica
mulled over his words. "It would be selfish," she admitted.
Even
her acquiescence reinforced Cadderly's fears that something was terribly wrong.
Danica was sharp thinking and never before so easily manipulated.
"I
will wait for you to make the arrangements," she agreed, "but not for
long! The time has come for Iron Skull. This I know is true. I am a true
disciple of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn."
Cadderly
did not know how to proceed. He sensed that if he left Danica, she would go
right back to her attempt. He looked all around, his gaze finally settling on
Danica's bed. "It would be well for you to rest," he offered.
Danica
looked to the bed, then back to Cadderly, a sly look on her face. "I know
something better than rest," she purred, moving much closer. The urgency
of her unexpected kiss weakened Cadderly in the knees and promised him many
wonderful things.
But not
like this. He reminded himself that something was wrong with Danica, that
something was apparently wrong with almost everything around him.
"I
have to go," he said, pulling away. "To Dean Thobicus to make the
arrangements. You rest now. Surely you will need your strength."
Danica
reluctantly let him go, honestly torn between her perception of duty and the
needs of love.
* * * *
*
Cadderly
stumbled back down to the first level. The hallways were unnervingly empty and
quiet, and Cadderly wasn't certain of where he should turn. He had few close
friends in the library-he wasn't about to go to Kierkan Rufo with this problem,
and he wanted to keep far away from the living and working quarters of Dean
Thobicus and the headmasters, fearing an encounter with Avery.
In the
end, he went back to the kitchen and found Pikel and Ivan, nearly collapsed
with exhaustion, still stubbornly arm wrestling at the table. Cadderly knew
that the dwarves were headstrong, but more than an hour had passed since they
had begun their match.
When
Cadderly approached, shaking his head in disbelief, he saw just how headstrong
the Bouldershoulder brothers could be. Purplish bruises from popped veins lined
their arms and their entire bodies trembled violently under the continuing
strain, but their visages were unyieldingly locked.
"I'll
put ye down!" Ivan snarled.
Pikel
growled back and strained harder at the pull.
"Stop
it!" Cadderly demanded. Both dwarves looked up from the match, realizing
only then that someone had entered the kitchen.
"I
can take him," Ivan assured Cadderly.
"Why
are you fighting?" Cadderly asked, guessing that the dwarves would not
remember.
"Yerself
was here," Ivan replied. "Ye saw he was the one what started
it."
"Oh?"
Pikel piped in sarcastically.
"What
did he start?" Cadderly asked.
"The
fight!" growled an exasperated Ivan.
"How?"
Ivan
had run out of answers. He looked at Pikel, who only shrugged in reply.
"Then why are you fighting?"
Cadderly asked again with no answer forthcoming.
Both
dwarves stopped at the same time and sat looking across the table at each
other.
"Me
brother!" Ivan cried suddenly, springing over the table. Pikel caught him
in midnight and their hugs and pats on the back were nearly as vicious as the
arm wrestling had been.
Ivan
turned happily on Cadderly. "He's me brother!" the dwarf announced.
Cadderly
strained a smile and figured that it might be best to divert the dwarves as he
had diverted Danica. "It is not so far from suppertime," was all he
had to say.
"Supper?"
Ivan bellowed.
"Oo
oi!" added Pikel, and they were off, whirling like little bearded
tornados, sweeping the kitchen into order in preparation of the evening meal.
Cadderly waited just a few minutes, to make sure that the dwarves wouldn't get
back to their fighting, then he slipped out and headed back to check on Danica.
He
found her in her room, sleeping contentedly. He pulled her blankets up over
her, then went to the stone to see if he could find some way to remove it.
"How
did you ever get this up here?" he asked, staring at the heavy block. It
would take at least two strong men to move it, and even then, or even with
three men, the stairs would not be easily negotiated. For now, Cadderly figured
that he could just drop the block down from the sawhorses, put it on the floor
to stop Danica from making her Iron Skull attempt. He went back to the bed and
took the heaviest blankets. He tied them together and wrapped them about the
block, then threw both ends over a rafter in the low room.
Cadderly
grabbed the dangling ends and hoisted himself right off the floor to tack at
the block. The sawhorses leaned, then toppled and the rafter creaked in
protest, but Cadderly's counterbalancing weight brought the blanketed block
down slowly and quietly.
Using
the sawhorse legs as levers, he managed to wiggle the blankets out from under
the stone. Then he tucked Danica back in and headed away, his mind racing to
find some logical reason for all the illogical events of the day.
* * * *
*
It was
a wondrous oak, a most excellent tree indeed, and Newander gently stroked each
of its spreading branches as he made his way higher. The view from the
uppermost branches was splendid, a scene that sent shivers of delight along the
druid's spine.
When he
turned about to regard the mountains to the south-west, though, Newander's
smile disappeared.
There
sat the Edificant Library, a barely seen square block far in the distance. Newander
hadn't meant to be gone this long; for all the freedom and individuality their
order offered, he knew that Arcite would not be pleased.
A bird
flitted down and landed not far from the druid's head.
"I
should be getting back," the druid said to it, though he wanted to remain
out here in the wilderness, away from the temptations of civilization.
Newander
started reluctantly down the tree. With the distant library removed from sight,
he nearly headed off again in the opposite direction. He didn't, though.
Chastising himself for his fears and weaknesses, he grudgingly started back
toward the library, back to his duties.
* * * *
*
Cadderly
meant to lie down and rest for only a short while when he returned to his room.
The afternoon was barely half over, but it already had been an exhausting day.
Soon the young priest was snoring loudly.
But not
contentedly. From the depths of his mist-filled dreams came the walking dead,
skeletons and gruesome ghouls, reaching for him with sharp, bony hands and rotting
fingers.
He sat
up in pitch blackness. Cold trails of sweat lined his face, and his blankets
were moist and clammy. He heard a noise to the side of the bed. He hadn't
undressed when he lay down, and he fumbled about, finding his spindle-disks and
then his light tube.
Something
was close.
The end
cap popped off and the light streamed out. Cadderly nearly flicked his
spindle-disks out of sheer terror, but he managed to forego his attack when he
recognized the white fur of a friend.
As
startled as Cadderly, Percival rushed across the room, upsetting all sorts of
things, and darted under the bed. The squirrel came up tentatively a moment
later at Cadderly's feet and slowly moved up to nestle in the pit of the man's
arm.
Cadderly
was glad for the company. He recapped his light, but kept it in his hand, and
soon was fast asleep.
The
walking dead were waiting for him.
The
Time to Act
Barjin
is preparing to open the gate," Dorigen told Aballister. "My contacts
on the lower planes sense the beginnings of the portal." "How
long?" the wizard asked grimly. Aballister was glad that Druzil soon would
be close to Barjin, keeping an eye on the dangerous man, but he was not pleased
that Barjin had so quickly advanced to this level of preparedness. If Barjin meant
to open a gate, then his plans were probably in full swing.
Dorigen
shrugged. "An hour or two," she replied. "I cannot know which
methods of sorcery the priest will employ." She looked over to Druzil,
sitting comfortably atop Aballister's desk, appearing impassive, though both
wizards knew better than to think that. "Do you really believe it's
necessary to send the imp?"
"Do
you trust Barjin?" Aballister answered.
"Talona
would not have allowed him to take the elixir if he was not loyal to our cause,"
Dorigen replied.
"Do
not presume that the goddess is so directly interested in our cause,"
warned Aballister, rising from and walking nervously about his oaken chair.
"The Time of Troubles has passed and much has changed. Talona's avatar was
pleased to bring me into her dark fold, but I am not her only concern, and I do
not presume to be her chief concern. She directed me to Druzil, and he provided
the chaos curse. Its fate is in my... in our hands now."
"But
if Barjin was not of Talona's clergy
..." Dorigen argued, shifting tentatively from foot to foot and
letting her companion complete the warning for himself.
Aballister
considered Dorigen for a long moment, surprised that she was as fearful as he
about Barjin. She was a middle-aged wizard, thin and drawn, with darting eyes
and a tangle of graying black hair that she never bothered to brush.
"Perhaps
he is of Talona's clergy," Aballister replied. "I believe that he
is." Aballister had played these possible scenarios through his thoughts a
hundred times over the last few days. "Do not let that fact comfort you.
If Barjin stuck a poisoned dagger into my heart, Talona would not be pleased,
but neither would she seek vengeance on the priest. That is the price of
serving a goddess such as ours."
Dorigen
considered those words for a few moments, then nodded her agreement.
"We
vie for power with the priests," Aballister went on. "It has been
that way since the beginning of Castle Trinity, and that contest intensified
with Barjin's arrival. He gained control of the elixir from me. I admit my own
failure in not anticipating his cunning, but I have not conceded defeat, I
promise you. Now, go back to your chambers and converse with your contacts.
Inform me at once if there is any change in Barjin's gate."
Aballister
looked over to his magical mirror and considered whether he should scry into
Barjin's altar room to confirm what Dorigen had told him. He decided against
it, though, knowing that Barjin would easily sense the scrying and recognize
its source. Aballister did not want Barjin to know how concerned he was, did
not want the priest to understand how great an advantage he was gaining in
their competition.
The
wizard looked over his shoulder and nodded to Druzil.
"The
priest is a daring one," Druzil remarked, "to open a gate right below
so many enemies of magical power. Bene tellemara. If the priests of the library
discover the gate ..."
"It
was not unexpected," Aballister retorted defensively. "We knew that
Barjin was taking materials for sorcery."
"If
he is opening the gate already," Druzil put in, "then perhaps the
curse has begun!" The imp rubbed his pudgy, leathery hands eagerly at that
prospect.
"Or
perhaps Barjin's situation has become desperate," Aballister quickly
replied.
Druzil
wisely disguised his excitement.
"We
must get the brazier prepared," Aballister said, "and quickly. We
must be ready before Barjin begins his summoning." He moved over to his
own burning brazier and picked up the closest bag, checking to ensure that the
powder inside was blue.
"I
will provide you with two powders," the wizard explained. "One to
close Barjin's gate behind you as you pass through to join him, another to
reopen it so that you may return to me."
"To
ensure that I am his only catch?" Druzil asked, cocking his dog-faced head
curiously.
"I
am not as confident of Barjin's powers as he appears to be," Aballister
replied. "If he summons too many denizens, even minor creatures, of the
lower planes through to serve him, his control will be sorely taxed. No doubt
he is bringing in undead to serve him as well. That type of an army could be
beyond him when the priests of the Edificant Library strike back. I fear Barjin
may be reaching too far. It all could crumble around him."
"Fear?"
Druzil asked slyly. "Or hope?"
Aballister's
hollowed eyes narrowed dangerously. "Examine the situation from another
point of view, my dear Druzil," he purred. "From your own. Do you
wish to find competitors from your filthy home at Barjin's side. Might not
another imp, or a midge perhaps, know you and know that you have been in
service to me?"
The
wizard enjoyed the way the imp's features suddenly seemed to droop.
"Barjin
would know you as my agent then," Aballister went on. "If you were
fortunate, he would only banish you."
Druzil looked
over to Aballister's brazier and nodded his agreement.
"Get
through as soon as Barjin opens his gate," Aballister instructed, dumping
the blue powder into the burning brazier. The flames roared and shifted through
the colors of the spectrum. Druzil walked by the wizard, taking the two tiny
bags and looping them over the foreclaws on his wing.
"Close
Barjin's gate as you step out of the flames," Aballister continued.
"He will not understand the sudden shift in his fire's hue. He will think
it is the result of your passing."
Again
Druzil nodded and then, eager to be away from Aballister, and even more eager
to see exactly what was going on at the library, he jumped into the brazier and
was gone.
"Aballister's
plans serve everyone," Druzil muttered to himself a few minutes later, as
he floated in the black void at the edge of the material plane, just waiting
for Barjin's gate to open. The imp realized, too, that other things-jealousy
and fear-guided the wizard's actions. Barjin had shown no signs of weakness
throughout and Aballister knew as well as Druzil did that a gate to the lower
planes would not seriously threaten the priest's successes. Still, Druzil was
more than happy when he looked down at the magical powders Aballister had
provided. The imp remained intrigued by Barjin's brashness and confidence. The
priest's preliminary victories, both at Castle Trinity, against Aballister, and
possibly in the dungeons of the library, could not easily be dismissed. While
Aballister might fear for his own position, Druzil's only concern was the chaos
curse, the recipe he had waited so very long to exploit.
Where the chaos curse was concerned, Barjin
deserved some serious attention.
* * * *
*
The
terrible, clawed hand grabbed at Cadderly's heart. He dove to the side wildly,
his arms flailing in futile defense.
He woke
up when he hit the floor and spent several long moments trying to orient
himself. It was morning, and Cadderly's nightmares faded fast under the sun's
enlightening rays. Cadderly tried to hold on to them so that he might better
decipher any hidden meaning, but they could not withstand the light of day.
With a
resigned shrug, Cadderly focused his thoughts back to the previous afternoon,
remembering the events before he had come for some rest.
Some
rest! How much time had passed? he wondered frantically, looking at his
clocking measurements on the floor. Fifteen hours?
Percival
was still in the room but apparently had been up and about for some time. The
squirrel sat on Cadderly's desk just inside the window, contentedly munching on
an acorn. Below him lay the discarded husks of a dozen appetizers.
Cadderly
sat up beside the bed and tried again to recover the fading blur of his dreams,
seeking some due to the confusion that had so suddenly come into his life. His
light tube, opened and glowing faintly, lay under the thick jumble of bed
covers.
"There
is something here" Cadderly remarked to Percival, absently grabbing and
recapping the tube. "Something I cannot yet understand." There was
more confusion than determination in Cadderly's voice. Yesterday seemed a long
time ago, and he seriously wondered where his memories ended and his dreams
began. How unusual had yesterday's events really been? How much of the apparent
strangeness was no more than Cadderly's own fear? Danica could be a stubborn
one, after all, he reminded himself, and who could predict the actions of
dwarves?
Unconsciously,
Cadderly rubbed the deep bruise on the side of his head. The daylight streaming
into his room made everything seem in order. They made all of his fears that
something had gone awry in the secure library seem almost childish.
A
moment later, he realized a new fear, one based surely in reality. There came a
knock on his door and the call of a familiar voice. "Cadderly? Cadderly,
boy, are you in there?"
Headmaster
Avery.
Percival
popped the acorn into a chubby cheek and skittered out the window. Cadderly
hadn't gotten to his feet when the headmaster entered.
"Cadderly!"
Avery cried, rushing to him. "Are you all right, my boy?"
"It
is nothing," Cadderly replied tentatively, keeping out of Avery's reaching
hands. "I just fell out of bed."
Avery's
distress did not diminish. "That is terrible!" the headmaster cried.
"We cannot have that, oh, no!" Avery's eyes darted about frantically,
then he snapped his fingers and smiled widely. "We will get the dwarves to
put up a railing. Yes, that is it! We cannot have you falling out of bed and
injuring yourself. You are much too valuable an asset to the Order of Deneir for
us to allow such potential tragedy!"
The
young scholar looked at him blankly, uncertain whether this was sarcasm or
strange reality.
"It
is nothing," Cadderly replied timidly.
"Oh,
yes," Avery spouted, "you would say that. Such a fine lad! Never
concerned for your own safety!" Avery's exuberant pat on the back hurt
Cadderly more than the fall.
"You
have come to give me my list of duties," Cadderly reasoned, eager to
change the subject. Somehow he liked Avery better when the headmaster was
screaming at him. At least then he could be certain of Avery's intent.
"Duties?"
Avery asked, seeming sincerely confused. "Why, I do not believe that you
have any this day. Or, if you do, ignore them. We cannot have one of your
potential busied by menial tasks. Make your own routines. Certainly you know
better than any where you might be of greatest value."
Cadderly
didn't believe a word of it. Or if he did allow himself to believe Avery's
sincerity, he couldn't quite comprehend it anyway. "Then why are you
here?" he asked.
"Do
I need a reason to look in on my most-prized acolyte?" Avery answered,
giving Cadderly a second rough pat. "No, no reason. I just came to say
good morning, and I say it now. Good morning!" He started away, then
stopped abruptly, spun about and wrapped a bear hug on Cadderly. "Good
morning indeed!"
Avery,
his eyes suddenly misted, put him out at arm's length. "I knew that you
would grow to be a fine lad when first you came to us," he said.
Cadderly
expected him to abruptly change the subject, as he always did when speaking of
Cadderly's early days at the Edificant Library, but Avery rambled on.
"We
feared that you would become just like your father-he was an intelligent one,
just like you! But he had no guidance, you see." Avery's laughter erupted
straight from his belly. "I called him a Gondsman!" the priest
roared, slapping Cadderly's shoulder.
Cadderly
failed to see the humor, but he was truly intrigued to hear about his father.
That subject had always been avoided at the library, and Cadderly, with no
recollections at all before his arrival, had never pressed it seriously.
"And
indeed he was," Avery continued, becoming calm and grim. "Or worse, I
fear. He could not remain here, you see. We could not allow him to take our
knowledge and put it to destructive practice."
"Where
did he go?" Cadderly asked.
"I
know not. That was twenty years ago!" Avery replied. "We saw him only
once after that, the day he presented Dean Thobicus with his son. Do you
understand, then, my boy, why I am always chasing after you, why I fear that
your course might lead you astray?"
Cadderly
didn't even try to find a voice to respond with, though he would have liked to
learn more while he had the headmaster in so talkative a mood.
He
quickly reminded himself that these actions were out of sorts for Avery, and
just further confirmation that something was going wrong.
"Well,
then," the headmaster said. He slammed Cadderly with one more hug, then
pushed the young man away, spinning briskly for the door. "Do not waste too
much of this glorious day!" he roared as he entered the hall.
Percival
came back to the window, working on a new acorn.
"Do
not even ask," Cadderly warned him, but if the squirrel cared at all, he
did not show it.
"So
much for dreams," Cadderly remarked grimly. If ever he doubted his
memories of the previous day, he did not now, not in light of Avery's outburst.
Cadderly dressed quickly. He would have to check on Ivan and Pikel, to make
sure they were not back at their fighting, and on Kierkan Rufo, to make sure
the man had no designs against Danica.
The
hallway was strangely quiet, though the morning was in full swing. Cadderly
started for the kitchen but changed his direction suddenly when he got to the
spiral stairway. The only change in the daily routines, the only unusual
occurrence at the library before this inexplicable weirdness, had been the
arrival of the druids.
They
had been housed on the fourth floor. Normally that level was reserved for the
novice priests of the host sects, the servants, and for storage, but the druids
had expressed a desire to be away from the rest of the gathered scholars. Not
without reservations, for he did not want to disturb the xenophobic group,
Cadderly started up the stairs instead of down. He didn't really believe that
Arcite, Newander, and Cleo were the source of the problems, but they were wise
and experienced and might have some insight about what was going on.
The
first sign Cadderly noticed that something up here, too, was amiss, was a growl
and a scraping noise. He stood outside the door to the druids' quarters in a
remote comer of the north wing, uncertain of whether to continue, wondering
whether the woodland priests might be engaged in some private ritual.
Memories
of Danica and Avery and Brother Chaunticleer spurred him on. He knocked lightly
on the door.
No
answer.
Cadderly
turned the handle and opened the door a crack. The room was a mess, the work of
an obviously agitated brown bear. The creature squatted on the bed, which had
broken under its great weight, and was now casually tearing apart a down-filled
pillow. Shuffling slowly across the floor in front of it was a huge tortoise.
The
bear seemed to pay little attention to him, so Cadderly boldly opened the door
a bit wider. Newander sat on the windowsill, staring despairingly out at the
wide mountains, his blond hair hanging limply about his shoulders.
"Arcite
and Cleo," the druid remarked offhandedly. "Arcite is the bear."
"A
ritual?" Cadderly asked. He remembered when the druid named Shannon had
enacted such physical changes before his eyes years ago, and he knew that the
shape-changing ability was common for the most powerful druids. Actually
witnessing it again amazed him nonetheless.
Newander
shrugged, not really knowing the answer. He looked at Cadderly, a saddened
expression on his face.
Cadderly
started to go to him, but Arcite, the bear, didn't seem to like that idea. He
stood high and issued a growl that turned Cadderly right around.
"Keep
yourself safely back from him," Newander explained. "I am not yet
certain of his intentions."
"Have
you asked?"
"He
does not answer," Newander replied.
"Then
can you be sure it is really Arcite?" Cadderly asked. Shannon had
explained that the druidic shape change was purely physical, with retention of
the woodland priest's mental facilities. Shape-changed druids could even
converse in the common tongue.
"It
was," Newander replied, "and is. I recognize the animal. Perhaps it
is Arcite now, more truly Arcite than Arcite ever was."
Cadderly
could not exactly decipher those words, but he thought he understood the
druid's basic meaning. "The turtle, then, is Cleo?" he asked.
"Or is Cleo really the turtle?"
"Yes,"
Newander answered. "Both ways, as far as I can discern."
"Why
is Newander still Newander?" Cadderly pressed, guessing the source of
Newander's despair.
He saw
that his question greatly wounded the still-human druid, and he figured that he
had Percival answers. He bowed quickly, exited, and closed the door. He started
to walk away, but changed his mind and ran instead.
Newander
sat back against the windowsill and looked at his animal companions. Something
had happened here, while he was gone, though he still wasn't certain whether it
had been a good or a bad thing. Newander feared for his comrades, but he envied
them, too. Had they found some secret while he was away, some measure by which
they could slip fully into the natural order? He had seen Arcite in bear form
before, and clearly recognized the druid, but never had it been like this. This
bear resisted Newander's every attempt to communicate; Arcite was fully a bear,
in body and mind. The same held true of Cleo, the turtle.
Newander
remained a human, alone now in a house of tempting civilization. He hoped that
his friends would return soon; he feared he would lose his way without their
guidance.
Newander
looked back out the window, back to the mountains majestic and the world that
he so loved. For all of that love, though, the druid still did not know where
he fit in.
* * * *
*
When he
arrived at the kitchen, Cadderly found that the dwarves had resumed their
fighting. Pots, pans, and kitchen knives hummed about the room, smashing
ceramic items, clanging against iron ones, and knocking holes in the walls.
"Ivan!"
Cadderly screamed, and the desperation in his voice actually stopped the
barrage.
Ivan
looked at Cadderly blankly and, from across the room, Pikel added,
"Oo."
"What
are you fighting about now?" Cadderly asked.
"That
one's fault!" Ivan growled. "He spoiled me soup. Put in roots and
leaves and grass and things. Says it's druidlike that way. Bah! A dwarven
druid!"
"Put
your desires on hold, Pikel," Cadderly advised solemnly. "Now is not
the time to be thinking of joining a druidic order."
Pikel's
big, round eyes narrowed dangerously.
"The
druids are not in the mood for visitors," Cadderly explained, "even
for aspiring druids. I just came from them." Cadderly shook his head.
"Something very wrong is going on," he said to Ivan. "Look at
you two, fighting. Never have you done that in all the years I have known
you."
"Never
before did me stupid brother claim that he's a druid!" Ivan replied.
"Doo-dad,"
Pikel pointedly added.
"Granted,"
said Cadderly, glancing curiously at Pikel, "but look around at the
destruction in this kitchen. Do you not believe this is a bit out of
hand?"
Tears
flooded both Ivan and Pikel's eyes when they took a moment to survey their
prized kitchen. Every pot had been upset; the spice rack was thoroughly smashed
and all spices lost; their oven, Pikel's own design, was damaged so brutally
that it could not possibly be repaired.
Cadderly
was glad that his appeal had not gone unnoticed, but the dwarven tears made him
shake his head in continued disbelief. "Everyone has gone mad," he
said. "The druids are up in their room, pretending to be animals.
Headmaster Avery acts as if I am his favorite protege. Even Danica is out of
sorts. She nearly crippled Rufo yesterday and has it in her mind to try this
Iron-skull maneuver."
"That'd
explain the block," remarked Ivan.
"You
know about that?" Cadderly asked.
"Brought
it up yesterday," Ivan explained. "Solid and heavy, that one! Yer
lady was here this morning, needing to put the thing back up on the
sawhorses."
"You
didn't. . :'
'"Course
we did," Ivan replied, puffing out his barrellike chest. "Who else'd
be able to lift the thing ... ?"
The dwarf stopped abruptly. Cadderly was already gone.
The
renewed clamor from Histra's room haunted Cadderly when he got back to the
third level. The priestess of Sune's cries had only intensified, taking on a
primordial urgency that truly frightened Cadderly and made every running stride
toward Danica's room seem a futile, dream-weighted step.
He
burst through Danica's door, not even slowing to knock. He knew in his heart what
he would find.
Danica
lay on her back in the center of the floor, her forehead covered in blood. The
stone block was not broken, but her pounding had moved the sawhorses back a few
feet. Like Danica, the block was caked in blood in several places, indicating
that the monk had slammed it repeatedly, even after splitting open her head.
"Danica,"
Cadderly breathed, moving to her. He tilted her head back and stroked her face,
still delicate beneath her swollen and battered forehead.
Danica
stirred just a bit, managing to drape one arm weakly over Cadderly's shoulder.
One of her almond eyes cracked open, but Cadderly did not think she saw
anything.
"What
have you done to her?" came a cry from the doorway. Cadderly turned to see
Newander glaring at him, quarterstaff leveled at the ready.
"I
did nothing " Cadderly retorted. "Danica did it to herself.
Against that block." He pointed to the
bloodied stone, and the druid relaxed his grip on the staff. "What is
happening?" Cadderly demanded. "With your friends, with Danica? With
everyone, Newander? Something is wrong!"
Newander
shook Percival head helplessly. "This is a cursed place," he agreed,
dropping his gaze to the floor. "I have sensed it since my return."
"It?"
Cadderly asked, wondering what Newander knew that he did not.
"A
perversion," the druid tried to explain, though he stuttered over the
words, as though he, himself, had not yet come to understand his fears.
"Something out of the natural order, something ..."
"Yes,"
Cadderly agreed. "Something not as it should be."
"A
cursed place," Newander said again.
"We
must figure out how it is cursed," reasoned Cadderly, "and why."
"Not
we," Newander corrected. "I am a failure, good lad. You must find
your own answers."
Cadderly
wasn't even surprised anymore at the unexpected and uncharacteristic response,
nor did he try to argue. He gently lifted Danica in his arms and carried her
over to the bed, where Newander joined them.
"Her
wounds are not too serious," the druid announced after a quick inspection.
"I have some healing herbs." He reached into a belt pouch.
Cadderly
grabbed his wrist. "What is happening?" he asked again, quietly.
"Have all the priests gone mad?"
Newander
pulled away and sniffled. "I care nothing for your priests," he said.
"It is for my own order that I fear, and for myself!"
"Arcite
and Cleo," Cadderly remarked grimly. "Can you help them?"
"Help
them?" Newander replied. "Surely it is not they who need help. It is
me. They are of the order. Their hearts lie with the animals. Pity Newander, I
say. He has found his voice and it is not the bay nor the growl, nor even the
cackle of a bird!"
Cadderly's
face crinkled at the absurd words. The druid considered himself a failure
because he had not changed into some beast and crawled about on the floor!
"Newander,
the druid," Newander went on, fully absorbed in self-pity. "Not so, I
say. Not a druid by my own measure."
Cadderly
had a definite feeling that time was running out for all of them. He had
awakened that morning full of hope, but things certainly had not improved.
He
looked closely at Newander. The druid considered himself a failure, but by
Cadderly's observation, he remained the most rational person at the library.
Cadderly needed some help now, desperately. "Then be Newander, the
healer," he said. "Tend to Danica-on your word."
Newander
nodded.
"Heal
her, and do not let her back to that block!" As if in response to his own
words, Cadderly rushed across the room and pushed the stone over, not even
caring about the resounding crash or the damage to the floor.
"Do
not let her do anything," Cadderly went on firmly.
"Would
you put your trust in a failure?" the pitiful Newander asked.
Cadderly
did not hesitate. "Self-pity does not become you," he scolded. He
grabbed the druid roughly by the front of his green cloak. "Danica is the
most important person in all the world to me," he said sincerely,
"but I have some things I must do, though I fear I do not yet understand
what they might be. Newander will care for Danica-there is no one else-on his
word and with my trust."
Newander
nodded gravely and put his hand back into his pouch.
Cadderly
moved swiftly to the door, paused, and looked back at the druid. He didn't feel
comfortable leaving Danica, even with Newander, whom he trusted despite the
druid's self-doubts. Cadderly dismissed his protective urges. If he really
wanted to help Danica, to help everyone in the library, he would have to find
out what was going on, find the source of the infection that had apparently
come over the place, and not merely bandage its symptoms. It was up to him, he
decided. He nodded to Newander and headed for his room.
Cryptic
The
tunnel was fiery and swirling, but not so long for the imp. These were
summoning flames and did not bum a creature of Druzil's otherworldly
constitution. Barjin had opened his interplanar gate, exactly as Dorigen had
predicted, and Druzil was quick to rush to the cleric's call.
A puff
of red smoke-Druzil dropping the powder to effectively shut the gate behind
him-signaled Barjin that his first summoned ally had arrived. He stared deeply
into the brazier's orange flames at the grotesque face taking definite form. A
batlike wing extended from the side of the brazier, then another, and a moment
later Druzil hopped through. "Who has dared to call me?" the imp
snorted, playing the part of an unwitting lower-planar creature caught by
Barjin's magical call.
"An
imp?" the priest retorted derisively. "I have extended all my efforts
for the sake of summoning a mere imp?" Druzil folded his wings around him
and snarled, not appreciating Barjin's tone.
If Barjin exhibited sarcastic disdain, Druzil
knew that that, too, was part of the summoning game. As with the summoned
creature, if the summoner accepted the situation without grumbles, he would be
giving a definite advantage to his counterpart. Sorcery, the magic of conjuring
creatures from other planes, was a contest of wills, where perceived strength
was often more important than actual strength.
Druzil
knew that the priest was thrilled that his first call had been answered at all,
and an imp, resourceful and clever, was no small catch. But Barjin had to seem
disappointed, had to make Druzil believe he was capable of calling and
controlling much larger and stronger denizens.
Druzil
didn't appear impressed. "I may go?" he replied as he turned back to
the brazier.
"Hold!"
Barjin shouted at him. "Do not assume anything, I warn you. I have not
dismissed you, nor shall I for many days to come. What is your name?"
"Cueltar
qui tellemar gwi," Druzil replied.
"Lackey
of the stupid one?" Barjin translated, laughing, though he did not fully
understand the connotations of Druzil's words. "Surely you can concoct a
better title than that for yourself!"
Druzil
rocked back on his clawed feet, hardly believing that Barjin could understand
the common language of the lower planes. This priest was full of surprises.
"Druzil,"
the imp replied suddenly, though he didn't quite understand why he had revealed
his true name. Barjin's quiet chuckle told him that the priest might have
mentally compelled such a truthful response.
Yes,
Druzil thought again, this priest was full of surprises.
"Druzil,"
Barjin muttered, as though he had heard the name before, a fact that did not
please the imp. "Welcome, Druzil," Barjin said sincerely, "and
be glad that I have called you to my side. You are a creature of chaos, and you
will not be disappointed by what you witness in your short stay here."
"I
have seen the Abyss," Druzil reminded him. "You cannot imagine the wonders
there."
Barjin
conceded the point with a nod. No matter how completely the Most Fatal Horror
engulfed the priests of the Edificant Library, it could not, of course, rival
the unending hellish chaos of the Abyss.
"We
are in the dungeons of a bastion dedicated to order and goodness," Barjin
explained.
Druzil
crinkled his bulbous nose sourly, acting as though Barjin had revealed
something he did not already know.
"That
is about to change," Barjin assured him. "A curse has befallen this
place, one that will bring the goodly priests to their knees. Even an imp who
has witnessed the Abyss should enjoy that spectacle."
The
glimmer in Druzil's black eyes was genuine. This was the whole purpose in
giving Aballister the recipe for the chaos curse. Aballister had expressed
concerns, even distress over Barjin's choice of target and Barjin's apparent
successes, but Druzil was not Aballister's stooge. If Barjin could indeed take
down the Edificant Library, then Druzil would be much closer to realizing his
hopes of throwing an entire region of the Realms into absolute disarray.
He
looked around at the altar room, impressed by Barjin's work, particularly by
the setup around the precious bottle. His gaze then went to the door, and he
was truly amazed.
There
stood Barjin's newest bodyguard, wrapped head to toe in graying linen. Some of
the doth had slipped, revealing part of the mummy's face, dried and hollowed
skin on bone with several lesions where the skilled preservation techniques had
not held up to the test of centuries.
"Do
you like him?" Barjin asked.
Druzil
did not know how to respond. A mummy! Mummies were among the most powerful of
the undead, strong and disease ridden, hateful of all living things and nearly
invulnerable to most attacks. Few could animate such a monster; fewer still
would dare to, fearing that they could not begin to keep the monster under
control.
"The priests and scholars above soon
will be helpless, lost in their own confusion," Barjin explained,
"then they will meet my army. Look at him, my new friend, Druzil,"
the priest said triumphantly, moving over to Khalif. He started to drape an arm
over the scabrous thing, then apparently reconsidered the act and prudently
pulled back. "Is he not beautiful? He does love me so." To illustrate
his power, Barjin turned to the mummy and commanded, "Khalif, kneel!"
The
monster stiffly dropped to its knees.
"There
are other preserved corpses that offer similar promise," Barjin bluffed.
He had no other ashes, and any attempts to animate a mummified corpse without
such aid would prove futile or produce nothing more powerful than a simple
zombie.
Druzil's
growing admiration for Barjin did not diminish when the priest led him out on a
tour of the catacombs. Cunning, explosive glyphs, both fiery and electrical,
had been placed at strategic positions, and a virtual army of animated
skeletons sat patiently in their open tombs, awaiting Barjin's commands or the
predetermined conditions for action the priest had set upon them.
Druzil
did not need to be reminded that all of these precautions could well be
unnecessary. If the chaos curse continued to work effectively in the library
above, no enemies would be likely to find their way down to bother Barjin.
"Caution,"
Barjin muttered as though he had read Druzil's thoughts when the two had
returned to the altar room. "I always assume the worst, thus am I
pleasantly surprised if anything better occurs."
Druzil
could not hide his agreement or his excitement. Barjin's thinking had been
complete; the priest had taken no chances.
"This
library soon will be mine," Barjin assured the imp, and Druzil did not
doubt his boasts. "With the Edificant Library, the very cornerstone of the
Impresk region, defeated, all the area from Shilmista Forest to Impresk Lake
will fall before me."
Druzil
liked what he heard, but Barjin's reference to "me" and not to the
triumvirate was a bit unnerving. Druzil did not want any open warfare among the
ruling factions of Castle Trinity, but if it did come, the imp had to make
certain that he chose the winning side. He was even more glad now that
Aballister had chosen to send him to Barjin, glad that he could view both sides
of the coming storm.
"It
is almost done," Barjin reiterated. "The curse grabs at the
sensibilities of the priests above and the library soon will fall."
"How
can you know what happens above?" Druzil asked him, for the tour had not
included any windows or passages up into the library. The one stairway Barjin
had shown him had been smashed into pieces, and the door it once had led to had
been recently bricked off. The only apparent weakness in Barjin's setup was
isolation, not knowing the exact sequence of events in the library above.
"I
have only indications," Barjin admitted. "Behind the new wall I
showed you lies the library's wine cellar. I have heard many priests passing
through there for more than a day now, grabbing bottles at random-some of which
are extraordinarily expensive-and apparently guzzling them down. Their talk and
actions speak loudly of the growing chaos, for tins certainly is not within the
rules of behavior in the disciplined library. Yet you are correct in your
observations, friend imp. I do indeed require more details to the events
above."
"So
you have summoned me," said Druzil.
"So
I have opened the gate," Barjin corrected, flashing a sly look Druzil's
way. "I had hoped for a more powerful ally."
More of
the summoner's facade, Druzil thought, but he did not question Barjin's claims.
Anxious to see for himself what effects the curse was having, Druzil was more
than willing to serve Barjin in a scouting capacity. "Please, my
master," the imp whined. "Let me go and see for you. Please, oh,
please!"
"Yes,
yes," Barjin chuckled condescendingly. "You may go above while I
bring more allies through the gate."
"Does
a path remain through the wine cellar?" the imp asked.
"No,"
Barjin explained, grabbing Mullivy by the arm. "My good groundskeeper has
sealed that door well.
"Take
my imp out the western tunnel," Barjin instructed the zombie. "Then
return to me!" Mullivy's stinking, bloated corpse shuffled, stiff-legged,
out of its guard position and through the altar room door. Not revolted in the
least by the disgusting thing, Druzil flapped over and found a perch on
Mullivy's shoulder.
"Take
care, for it is daylight above," Barjin called after him. hi response,
Druzil chuckled, whispered an arcane phrase, and became invisible.
Barjin
moved excitedly back to the gate, hoping for continued good fortune in his
summoning. An imp was a prized catch for so small a gate, though if Barjin had
known the identity of this particular imp and his wizard master, or that Druzil
had sealed the gate behind his entry, he would not have been so thrilled.
He
tried for more than an hour, calling out general spells of summoning and the
names of every minor denizen he knew. Flames leaped and danced, but no forms
appeared within their orange glow. Barjin wasn't too concerned. The brazier
would bum for many days, and the necromancer's stone, though it had not yet
produced results, continued to send out its call for undead. The priest would
find many opportunities to add to his force.
* * * *
*
Cadderly
wandered the hallways of the building, stunned by the emptiness, the brooding
quiet. Many priests, both visitors and those of the host sects, such as Brother
Chaunticleer, had left the library without explanation, and many of those who
had remained apparently preferred the solitude of their rooms.
Cadderly did find Ivan and Pikel, in the
kitchen, busily cooking a variety of dishes.
"Your
fights have ended?" Cadderly asked, grabbing a biscuit as he entered. He
realized then that he hadn't eaten much in nearly a day, and that Danica and
Newander no doubt would be hungry also.
"Fights?"
Ivan balked. "No time for fighting, boy! Been cooking since the eve. Not a
many for supper, but them that's there won't go away."
A
terrible, sick feeling washed over Cadderly. He moved through the kitchen to
peek out the other door, which led to the library's large dining hall. A score
of people were in there, Headmaster Avery among them, stuffing themselves hand
over hand. Several had fallen to the floor, so full that they could hardly
move, but still trying to shove more food into their eager mouths.
"You
are killing them, you know," Cadderly remarked to the dwarves, his tone
resigned. The young scholar was beginning to get an idea of what was going on.
He thought of Histra and her unending passion, of Danica's sudden obsession
with lessons that were beyond her level of achievement, and of the druids,
Arcite and Cleo, so fanatic to their tenets that they had lost their very
identities.
"They
will eat as long as you put food before them," Cadderly explained.
"They will gorge themselves until they die."
Both
Ivan and Pikel stopped their stirring and stared long and hard at the young
priest.
"Slow
the meals down," Cadderly instructed them.
For the
first time in a while, Cadderly noted some measure of comprehension. Both
dwarves seemed almost repulsed by their own participation in the food orgy. Together
they backed away from their respective pots.
"Slow
the meals down," Cadderly asked again.
Ivan
nodded gravely.
"Oo,"
added Pikel.
Cadderly
studied the brothers for a long moment, sensing that they had regained their
sanity, that he could trust them as he had trusted Newander.
"I
will be back as soon as I can," he promised, then he took a couple of
plates, packed a meal, and took his leave.
Anyone
watching would have noticed a profound difference in the strides of the young
scholar as he left the kitchen. Cadderly had come down tentatively, afraid of
something he could not understand. He still had not figured out the curse or
its cause, nor could he remember his trials in the lower catacombs, but, more
and more, it was becoming evident to Cadderly that fate had placed a great
burden upon him, and the price of his success or failure was terrifying indeed.
To
Percival relief, Newander had the situation in Danica's room under control.
Danica was still in her bed, conscious but unable to move, for the druid had
compelled long vines of ivy to come in through the window and wrap the woman
where she lay. Newander, too, seemed in better spirits, and his face brightened
even more when Cadderly handed him the supper plate.
"You
have done well," Cadderly remarked.
"Minor
magic," the druid answered. "Her wounds were not so bad. What have
you learned?"
Cadderly
shrugged. "Little," he answered. "Whatever is wrong in this
place grows worse by the moment. I have an idea, though, a way that I might
learn what is happening."
Newander
perked up, expecting some revelation.
"I
am going to go to sleep."
The
druid's fair face crinkled in confusion, but Cadderly's confident smile
deflected any forthcoming questions. Newander took the plate and began eating,
mumbling to himself with every bite.
Cadderly
knelt beside Danica. She seemed barely coherent, but she managed to whisper,
"Iron Skull."
"Forget
Iron Skull," Cadderly replied quietly. "You must rest and heal.
Something is wrong here, Danica, wrong with you and with all the library. I do
not know why, but I seem to have not been affected." He paused, searching
for the words.
"I
think I did something," he said. Newander shuffled uneasily behind him.
"I cannot explain.... I do not understand, but I have this feeling, this
vagrant thought, that I somehow caused all of this."
"Surely
you cannot blame yourself," Newander said.
Cadderly
turned on him. "I am not looking to place any blame at all," he
replied evenly, "but I believe I played a part in this growing catastrophe,
whatever it might be. If I did, then I must accept that fact and search, not
for blame, but for a solution."
"How
do you mean to search?" the druid asked. His tone turned sarcastic.
"By going to sleep?"
"It
is hard to explain," Cadderly replied to the druid's stare. "I have
been dreaming-vivid dreams. I feel there is a connection. I cannot explain ..."
Newander's
visage softened. "You need not explain," he said, no longer doubting.
"Dreams sometimes do have the power of prophecy, and we have no clearer
trail to follow. Take your rest, then. I will watch over you."
Cadderly
kissed Danica's pale cheek.
"Iron
Skull," the woman whispered.
More
determined than ever, Cadderly pulled a blanket to the comer of the room and
lay down, placing an inkwell, quill, and parchments beside him. He threw an arm
across Percival eyes and filled his thoughts with skeletons and ghouls,
beckoning the nightmare.
* * * *
*
The
skeletons were waiting for him. Cadderly could smell the rot and the thick
dust, and hear the scuffle of fleshless feet on the hard stone. He ran in a red
fog, his legs heavy, too heavy. He saw a door down a long hallway, and there
was light peeking through its cracks. His legs were too heavy; he could not get
there. '
Cold beads of sweat caked Cadderly's clothing
and streaked his face. His eyes popped open and there, hovering over him, stood
the druid.
"What
have you seen, boy?" Newander asked. The druid quickly handed him the
writing materials.
Cadderly
tried to articulate the gruesome scene, but it was fast fading from his
thoughts. He snatched up the quill and began writing and sketching, capturing
as many of the images as he could, forcing Percival thoughts back into the
dimming recesses of his nightmare.
Then it
was daytime again, midafternoon, and the dream was no more. Cadderly remembered
the skeletons and the smell of dust, but the details were foggy and indistinct.
He looked down to the parchment and was surprised by what he saw, as if someone
else had done the writing. At the top of the scroll were the words,
"slow ... red fog.. . reaching for
me ... too close!" and below these was a sketch of a long hallway, its
sides lined by sarcophagi-filled alcoves and with a cracked door at its end.
"I
know this place," Cadderly began tentatively, then he stopped abruptly,
his elation and train of thought disrupted by Barjin's insidious and incessant
memory-blocking spell.
Before
Cadderly could fight back against the sudden lapse, a scream from the hallway
froze him where he sat. He looked at Newander, who was equally disturbed.
"That
was not the priestess of Sune," the druid remarked. They rushed through
the door and into the hallway.
There
stood a gray-capped priest, holding his entrails in Percival hands, an eerie,
almost ecstatic expression on his face. His tunic, too, was gray, though most
of it now was blood-stained, and still more blood poured out of the man's
opened belly with each passing second.
Cadderly
and Newander could not immediately find the strength to go to him, knew the
futility of it anyway. They watched in blank horror as the priest fell face
down, a pool of blood widening around him.
Disturbing Answers
Mullivy
was not a swift walker, and Druzil used this time away from Barjin to
reestablish contact with his master. He sent his thoughts out across the miles
to Castle Trinity and found an eager recipient awaiting them. Greetings, my
master, the imp communicated. You have found Barjin?
In the
catacombs, as you believed, Druzil replied. The fool.
Druzil
wasn't certain that he shared Aballister's appraisal, but the wizard didn't
need to know that. He has other allies, the imp imparted. Undead allies,
including a mummy.
Druzil
smiled widely as he sensed Aballister's reaction to that bit of news. The
wizard didn't mean to communicate his next thoughts, but Druzil was deeply
enough into his mind to hear them anyway.
I never
would have believed that Barjin could achieve that. Many emotions accompanied
those words, Druzil knew, and fear was not the least among them.
The
mighty Edificant Library is in peril, Druzil added, just to prod the wizard. If
Barjin succeeds, then the Most Fatal Horror will have put us on the path toward
a great victory. All the region will fall without the guidance of the library's
clerics.
Aballister
was wondering if the price was too high, Druzil realized, and the imp derided
that he had told the wizard enough for this day. Besides, he could see the
daylight up ahead as his zombie chauffeur neared the tunnel exit. He broke off
direct communication, though he let the wizard remain in his mind and view
through the imp's eyes. Druzil wanted Aballister to get a good look at the
glory of the chaos curse.
* * * *
*
The
white squirrel kept high in the branches, unsure of what its keen senses were
telling it. Mullivy came to the edge of the earthen tunnel, then immediately
turned around and disappeared back into it. Another scent, an unfamiliar scent,
lingered. Percival saw nothing, but like other foraging animals, low on the
food chain, the squirrel had learned quickly to trust more than just its eyes.
Percival
followed the scent-it was moving-to the tree-lined lane. The road was quiet, as
it had been for the last two days, though the sun shone bright and warm in a
clear blue sky.
The
squirrel's ears perked up and twitched nervously as the library's door opened,
seemingly of its own accord, and the strange scent moved inside.
The
unusualness of it all kept the squirrel sitting nervously still for many
moments, but the sun was warm and the nuts and berries in the trees and shrubs
were abundant, just waiting to be plucked. Percival rarely kept any thought for
any length of time, and when he spotted a pile of acorns lying unattended on
the ground, he was too relieved that the groundskeeper had stayed in the tunnel
to worry about anything else.
* * * *
*
Brazil's
perceptions of the state of the Edificant Library were far different from
Cadderly's. Unlike the young scholar, the imp thought the rising, paralyzing
chaos a marvelous thing. He found just a few priests in the study halls,
sitting unmoving in front of open books, so riveted by their studies that they
barely remembered to draw breath. Druzil understood the hold of the chaos curse
better than any; if Barjin entered the hall with a host of skeletons at his
back, these priests would offer no resistance, would probably not even notice.
Druzil
enjoyed the spectacle in the dining hall most of all, where gluttonous priests
sat on chairs set back from the table to accommodate their swelling bellies,
and other priests lay semiconscious on the floor. At one end of the table,
three priests were engaged in mortal combat over a single remaining turkey leg.
Arguments,
particularly between priests of differing faiths, were general throughout the
building, often becoming more serious encounters. The least faithful or
studious simply wandered away from the library altogether, and few had a care
to stop them. Those most faithful were so absorbed in their rituals that they
seemed to notice nothing else. In another of the second-floor study chambers,
Druzil found a pile of Oghman priests heaped together in a great ball, having
wrestled until they were too exhausted even to move.
When
Druzil left an hour later to report to Barjin, he was quite satisfied that the
chaos curse had done its work to unpredictable perfection.
He felt
the first insistent demands of his master when he rounded the northern side of
the building, approaching the tunnel.
You
have seen? his thoughts asked Aballister. He knew that if Aballister had been
paying attention, the wizard would know the state of the library as well as
Druzil did.
The
Most Fatal Horror, Aballister remarked somewhat sourly.
Barjin
has brought us a great victory, Druzil promptly reminded the ever-skeptical
wizard.
Aballister
was quick to reply. The library is not yet won. Do not count our victory until
Barjin is actually in control of the structure.
Druzil
replied by shutting toe wizard completely out of Percival thoughts in
midconversation. "Tellemara," the imp muttered to himself. The curse
was working. Already the few score priests remaining at the library probably
would not be able to fend off Barjin's undead forces, and their potential for
resistance lessened with each passing moment. Soon, many of them likely would
kill each other and many others simply would wander away. How much more control
did the wizard require before claiming victory?
Druzil
paid no heed to Aballister's final warning. Barjin would win here, the imp
decided, and he was thinking, too, that maybe he could find extra gains in his
mission from Aballister, in spying on the powerful priest. Ever since the
magical elixir had been dubbed an agent of Talona, the priests of Castle
Trinity had enjoyed a more prominent role in the evil triumvirate. With the
Edificant Library in Barjin's hands, and with Barjin controlling a strong
undead army, that domination would only increase.
Aballister
was an acceptable "master," as masters went, but Druzil was an imp
from the domain of chaos, and imps owed no loyalty to anyone except themselves.
It was
too early to make a definitive judgment, of course, but already Druzil was
beginning to suspect that he would find more pleasure and more chaos at
Barjin's side than at Aballister's.
* * * *
*
"Do
something for him!" Cadderly pleaded, but Newander only shook his head
helplessly. "Ilmater!" gasped the dying priest. "The ... pain," he stammered. "It is so
won-" He shuddered one final time and fell dead in Cadderly's arms.
"Who
could have done this?" Cadderly asked, though he feared he knew the
answer.
"Is
not Ilmater the Crying God, a deity dedicated to suffering?" the druid
asked, leading Cadderly to a clear conclusion.
Cadderly
nodded gravely. "Priests of Ilmater often engage in self-flagellation, but
it is usually a minor ritual of no serious consequence."
"Until
now," Newander remarked dryly.
"Come
on," Cadderly said, laying the dead priest onto the floor. The blood trail
was easily followed, and both Cadderly and Newander could have guessed where it
led anyway.
Cadderly
didn't even bother knocking on the partly opened door. He pushed it in, then
turned away, too horrified to enter. In the middle of the floor lay the
remaining five priests of the Ilmater delegation, torn and bloodied.
Newander
rushed in to check on them but returned in only a few moments, shaking ins head
grimly.
"Priests
of Ilmater never carry it this far," Cadderly said, as much to himself as
to the druid, "and druids never go so far as to become, heart and body,
their favored animals." He looked up at the druid, his gray eyes revealing
that he thought his words important. "Danica was never so obsessed as to
slam her face into a stone block repeatedly."
Newander
was beginning to catch on.
"Why
were we not affected?" Cadderly asked.
"I
fear that I have been," replied the sullen druid.
When
Cadderly looked more closely at Newander, he understood. The druid continued to
fear not for his animal-transformed friends, but for himself.
"I
have not the true heart for my chosen calling," explained the druid.
"You
make too many judgments," Cadderly scolded. "We know that something
is wrong-" he waved toward the room of carnage "-terribly wrong. You
have heard the priestess of Sune. You have seen these priests, and your own
druid brothers. For some reason, we two have been spared-and perhaps I know of
two others who have not been so badly affected-and that is not cause to lament.
Whatever has happened threatens the whole library."
"You
are wise for one so young," admitted Newander, "but what are we to
do? Surely my druid brothers and the girl will be of no help."
"We
will go to Dean Thobicus," Cadderly said hopefully. "He has overseen
the library for many years. Perhaps he will know what to do." Cadderly
didn't have to speak his hopes that Dean Thobicus, aged and wise, had not
fallen under the curse also.
The
journey down to the second floor only increased the companions' apprehension.
The halls were quiet and empty, until a group of drunken rowdies appeared down
at the other end of a long hallway. As soon as the mob spotted Cadderly and
Newander, they set out after them. Cadderly and the druid did not know if the
men meant to attack them or coerce them into joining the party, but neither of
them had any intentions of finding out.
Newander
turned back after rounding one comer and cast a simple spell. The group came in
fast pursuit, but the druid had laid a magical trip-wire and the intoxicated
mob had no defense against such a subtle attack. They tumbled in a twisting and
squirming heap and came up too busily wrestling with each other to remember
that they had been chasing somebody.
Cadderly
considered the headmasters' area his best hope- until he and Newander crossed
through the large double doors at the southern end of the second level. The
area was eerily quiet, with no one to be seen. Dean Thobicus's office door was
among the few that were not open. Cadderly moved up slowly and knocked.
He knew
in his heart that he would get no response.
Dean
Thobicus was never an excitable man. His love was introspection, spending hours
on end staring at the night sky, or at nothing at all. Thobicus's loves were in
his own mind, and when Cadderly and Newander entered his office, that was
exactly where they found him. He sat very still behind his large oaken desk and
apparently hadn't moved for quite a while. He had soiled himself, and his lips
were dry and parched, though a beaker full of water sat only inches away on his
desk.
Cadderly
called to him several times and shook him roughly, but the dean showed no sign
of having heard him. Cadderly gave him one last shake, and Thobicus fell right
over and remained where he dropped, as if he hadn't noticed.
Newander
bent to examine the man. "We'll get no answers from this one," he
announced.
"We
are running out of places to look," Cadderly replied.
"Let
us get back to the girl," said the druid. "No good in staying here,
and I am afraid for Danica with the drunken mob roaming the halls."
They
were relieved to find no sign of the drunken men as they exited the
headmasters' area, and their return trip through the quiet and empty hallways
was uneventful.
Their
sighs of relief upon entering Danica's room would have been lessened
considerably if either of them had noticed the dark figure lurking in the
shadows, eyeing Cadderly with utter hatred.
* * * *
*
Danica
was awake but unblinking when the two men returned to her. Newander started
toward her, concerned and thinking that she had fallen into the same catatonic
state as the dean, but Cadderly recognized the difference.
"She
is meditating," Cadderly explained, and even as he spoke the words, he
realized what Danica had in mind. "She is fighting whatever it is that
compels her."
"You
cannot know that," reasoned Newander.
Cadderly
refused to yield his assumptions. "Look at her closely," he observed,
"at her concentration. She is fighting, I say."
The
claim was beyond Newander's experience, either to agree or refute, so he
accepted Cadderly's logic without further argument.
"You
said you know of others who might have escaped?" he said, wanting to get
back to the business at hand.
"The
dwarven cooks," replied Cadderly, "Ivan and Pikel Bouldershoulder.
They have been acting strangely, I admit, but each time I have been able to
bring them to reason."
Newander
thought for a few minutes, chuckling quietly when he remembered Pikel, the
green-bearded dwarf that so badly wanted to join the druidical order. The
notion was absurd, of course, but Pikel was an appealing chap-for a dwarf.
Newander snapped his fingers and allowed himself a smile of hope as he found a
clue in Cadderly's report. "Magical," he said, looking back to
Cadderly. "It is said by all who know that dwarves are a tough lot against
magical enchantments. Might it be that the cooks can resist where men
cannot?"
Cadderly
nodded and looked to the vine-covered bed. "And Danica will resist in
time, I know," he said and turned back to Newander immediately. "But
what about us? Why have we been spared?"
"As
I told you," replied Newander, "it might well be that I have not been
spared. I was gone all of yesterday, out walking in the sunshine and feeling
the mountain breezes. I found Ar-cite and Cleo, bear and tortoise, upon my
return, but since I came back, I must admit that I, too, have felt compulsions."
"But
you have resisted them," said Cadderly.
"Perhaps,"
Newander corrected. "I cannot be sure. My heart of late has not been for
the animals, as seemingly were the hearts of my druid kin."
"And
so you doubt your calling," Cadderly remarked.
Newander
nodded. "It is a difficult thing. I so badly wish to join Arcite and Cleo,
to join the search they have begun for the natural order, but I want, too ..."
"Go
on," Cadderly prompted as though he believed the revelations were vital.
"I
want to learn of Deneir and the other gods," Newander admitted. "I
want to watch the progress of the world, the rise of cities. I want to ... I
want," Newander shook his head suddenly. "I do not know what I
want!"
Cadderly's
gray eyes lit up. "Even in your own heart you do not know what is in your
own heart," he said. "That is a rare thing, and it has saved you,
unless I miss my guess. That, and the fact that you have not been here for very
long since this all began."
"What
do you know?" Newander asked, a sharp edge on his voice. He softened
quickly, though, wondering how much truth was in the young scholar's words.
Cadderly
only shrugged in response. "It is only a theory."
"What
of you?" Newander asked. "Why are you not affected?"
Cadderly
nearly laughed for lack of a suitable answer. "I cannot say," he
honestly admitted. He looked to Danica again. "But I know now how I might
find out."
Newander
followed the young scholar's gaze to the meditating woman. "Are you going
back to sleep?"
Cadderly
gave him a sly wink. "Sort of."
Newander
did not argue. He wanted the time alone anyway to consider his own predicament.
He could not accept Cadderly's reasoning concerning his exclusion from whatever
was cursing the library, though he hoped it was as simple as that. Newander
suspected that something else was going on, something he could not begin to
understand, something wonderful or terrible-he could not be sure. For all of
his thinking, though, the druid could not rid himself of the image of Arcite
and Cleo, contented and natural, and could not dismiss his fears that his
ambivalence had caused him to fail Silvanus in a time of dire need.
* * * *
*
Cadderly sat crosslegged with his eyes closed
for a long time, relaxing each part of his body in turn, causing his mind to
sink within his physical self. He had learned these techniques from Danica-one
of the few things she had revealed about her religion-and had found them quite
useful, restful, and enjoyable. Now, though, the meditation had taken on a more
important rote.
Cadderly
opened his eyes slowly and viewed the room, seeing it in surreal tones. He
focused first on the block of stone, stained with his dear Danica's blood. It
sat between the downed sawhorses, and then it was gone, removed to blackness.
Behind it was Danica's cabinet and wardrobe, and then they, too, were gone.
He
glanced left, to the door and Newander keeping a watchful guard. The druid
watched him curiously, but Cadderly hardly noticed. A moment later, both druid
and door were holes of blackness.
His
visual sweep eliminated the rest of the room: Danica's desk and her weapons,
two crystalline daggers, in their boot sheaths against the wall; the window,
bright with late morning light; and, lastly, Danica herself, still deep in her
own meditation on the vine-wrapped bed.
"Dear
Danica," Cadderly muttered, though even he didn't hear the words. Then
Danica, too, and everything else, was out of his thoughts.
Again
he returned to relaxation-toes, then feet, then legs, fingers, then hands, then
arms-until he had achieved a sedated state. His breathing came slowly and
easily. His eyes were open, but they saw nothing.
There
was only quiet blackness, calm.
Cadderly
could not summon thoughts in this state. He had to hope that answers would flow
to him, that his subconscious would give him images and dues. He had no concept
of time passing, but it seemed a long while of emptiness, of simple,
uncluttered existence.
The
walking dead were alongside him then in the blackness. Unlike his dreams, he
saw the skeletal figures as no threat now, as though he were an unattached
observer instead of an active participant. They scuffled along on his mental
journey, falling behind him, leaving him in a hallway. There was the familiar
door, cracked and showing lines of light, always the ending image of his
nightmare.
The
picture faded, as if some unseen force were trying to stop him from proceeding,
a mental barrier that he now, for some reason unknown to him, believed to be a
magical spell.
The
images became a gray blur for just a moment, then focused again, and he was at
the door, then through the door.
The
altar room!
Cadderly
watched, hopeful and afraid, as the room darkened, leaving only a single,
red-glowing object, a bottle, visible before him. He saw the bottle up close
then, and he saw hands, his own hands, twisting off the stopper.
Red
smoke exploded all about him, stole every other image.
Cadderly
looked again on Danica's room, the image identical to the one he had blocked
out-even Newander remained at his position near the door-except that now there
hung in the air an almost imperceptible pink haze.
Cadderly
felt his heart quicken as the purpose of that haze became all too clear. His
gaze fell over Danica, still deep in her own meditation. Cadderly's thoughts
reached out to Danica and were answered. She was battling, as he had suspected,
fighting back against that permeating pink haze, trying to recover her
sensibilities against its debilitating effects.
"Fight,
Danica!" he heard himself say, and the words broke his trance. He looked
over to Newander, his expression desperate.
"I
was the cause," he said, holding up his hands as though they were covered
in blood. "I opened it!"
Newander
rushed over and knelt beside Cadderly, trying to calm him. "Opened?"
"The
bottle," Cadderly stammered. "The bottle! The red-glowing bottle. The
mist-do you see the mist?"
Newander
glanced around, then shook his head.
"It is there ... here," Cadderly said, grabbing the druid's arm and using
it to help him to his feet. "We have to close that bottle!"
"Where?"
the druid asked.
Cadderly
stopped suddenly, considering the question. He remembered the skeletons, the
dusty smell, the corridors lined with alcoves. "There really was a door in
the wine cellar," he said at length, "a door to the lowest catacombs,
those dungeons no longer used in the library."
"We
must go there?" asked Newander, rising beside Cadderly.
"No,"
Cadderly cautioned, "not yet. The catacombs are not empty. We have to
prepare." He looked to Danica again, seeing her in a new light now that he
understood her mental struggles.
"Will
she be fighting beside us?" Newander asked, noticing Cadderly's focus.
"Danica
is fighting now," Cadderly assured him, "but the mist hangs all about
us, and it is insistent." He gave Newander a confused look. "I still
do not know why I have been spared its effects."
"If
you were indeed the cause, as you believe," replied the druid, who had
lengthy experience with magical practices, "then that fact alone might
have spared you."
Cadderly
considered the words for a moment, but they hardly seemed to matter.
"Whatever the reason," he said determinedly, "we-I-have to dose
that bottle." He spent a few minutes trying to recall the obstacles before
him and imagining even more frightening monsters that might be lurking just
outside his nightmarish visions. Cadderly knew that he would need allies in
this fight, powerful allies to help him get back to the altar room.
"Ivan
and Pikel," he said to Newander. "The dwarves are more resistant, as
you said. They will help us."
"Go
to them," Newander bade him.
"You
stay with Danica," Cadderly replied. "Let no one, except for me and
the dwarven brothers, into the room."
"I
have ways of keeping the world out," Newander assured him.
As soon
as he entered the hallway, Cadderly heard the druid chanting softly. Danica's
wooden door, suddenly brought to life by Newander's spell, warped and expanded,
wedging tightly, immovably, into its frame.
* * * *
*
Ivan
and Pikel were not fighting when Cadderly entered the kitchen this time, but
neither were they cooking. They sat quietly, somberly, at the room's main table
opposite each other.
As soon
as he noticed Cadderly, Ivan absently handed him the one-handed crossbow,
finished to perfection. "Had an urge," the dwarf explained, not
giving the magnificent item a second look.
Cadderly
was not surprised. It seemed that many people in the Edificant Library were
having "urges" these days.
"What's
it about?" Ivan asked suddenly.
Cadderly
did not understand. Pikel, a grim expression on his normally carefree features,
pointed to the door leading into the dining room. Cadderly crossed the kitchen
tentatively and when he looked into the adjoining room, he came to realize the
reason for the dwarves' somber mood. Half the gluttonous priests, Avery
included, remained at the table, hardly able to move. The other half were worse
yet, lying on the floor in their own vomit. Cadderly knew without going to them
that several were dead, and his face, too, was ashen when he turned back into
the kitchen.
"So
what's it about?" Ivan asked again.
Cadderly
looked at him long and hard, unsure of how he could begin to explain the bottle
and his own, still unclear actions. Finally, he said only, "I am not
certain what has happened, but I believe I know now how to stop it."
He
thought his proclamation would excite the dwarves, but they hardly stirred at
the news.
"Will
you help me?" Cadderly asked. "I cannot do it alone."
"What
do ye need?" Ivan asked offhandedly.
"You,"
Cadderly replied, "and your brother. The curse- and it is a curse-comes
from below the cellars. I have to go down there to end it, but I fear that the
place is guarded."
"Guarded?"
Ivan balked. "How can ye guess that?"
"Just
trust me, I beg," replied Cadderly. "I am not so skilled with
weapons, but I have witnessed you two at your fighting and could use your
strong arms. Will you come with me?"
The
dwarves exchanged bored looks and shrugs. "I'd rather be cooking,"
Ivan remarked. "Gave up me adventuring pack long ago. Pikel'd rather be
..." He stopped and eyed his brother intently.
Pikel
fixed a smug look on his face, reached up, and waggled one side of his green
beard.
"A
druid!" Ivan yelled, hopping to his feet and grabbing a nearby pan.
"Ye stupid bird-loving, oak-kissing
... !"
"Oo
oi!" Pikel exclaimed, arming himself with a rolling pin.
Cadderly
was between them in an instant. "It is all part of the curse!" he
cried. "Can you not see that? It makes you argue and fight!"
Both
dwarves jumped back a step and lowered their utensil weapons.
"Oo,"
muttered Pikel curiously.
"If
you want to fight a true enemy," Cadderly began, "then come to my
room and help me prepare. There is something below the cellars, something
horrible and evil. If we do not stop it, then all the library is doomed."
Ivan
leaned to the side and looked around the young scholar to his similarly leaning
brother. They shared a shrug and simultaneously heaved their cookware weapons
across to the other side of the room.
"Let
us go to the gluttons first," Cadderly instructed. "We should leave
them as comfortable as we may."
The
dwarves nodded. "Then I'll get me axe," Ivan declared, "and me
brother'll get his tree!"
"Tree?"
Cadderly echoed quietly at the departing dwarves' backs. One look at Pikel's
green-dyed braid bouncing halfway down the dwarfs back and his huge, gnarly,
and smelly feet flopping out every which way from his delicate sandals told
Cadderly not even to bother pressing the question.
Blood
On His Hands
Cadderly
sorted through the many leather straps hanging in his wardrobe, finally puffing
out a belt with a strangely shaped, wide and shallow leather sheath on one
side. The fit of the small crossbow was perfect-there was even a place for the
loading pin. As usual, Ivan and Pikel had crafted the metal to exact
specifications.
Cadderly
drew the crossbow out again as soon as he had put it in. He tested the pin
next, cranking the bow and firing several times. The action was smooth and
easy; Cadderly even managed, without too much difficulty, to manipulate the
weapon enough to crank it with one hand.
Next
Cadderly took out the bandolier and slung it over his shoulder, carefully
lining up the sixteen loaded darts in front of him, within easy reach. He
winced when he wondered what damage a blow to Percival chest might cause, but
he held faith that the darts and the bandolier had been properly constructed.
He felt better when he saw himself in the mirror, as if wearing his latest
inventions had returned to him some control over his surroundings. Any smile he
felt welling was quickly sublimated, though, when he remembered the dangerous
task ahead. This was no game, he reminded himself. Already, and because of his
own actions, several men had died and all the library was threatened.
Cadderly
moved across the room, behind the door, to a closed and sealed iron box. He
fitted a key into the lock, then paused for a long moment, considering
carefully the precise steps he had to follow once the box was opened. He had
practiced this maneuver many times, but never before had he believed he would
need it.
As soon
as the box lid was opened, all the area around Cadderly fell into a globe of
absolute darkness. It was not a surprise to the young scholar; Cadderly had
paid Histra handsomely for placing this reversed form of her light spell within
the box. It was inconvenient-and Cadderly did not enjoy dealing with Histra-but
necessary to protect one of Cadderly's most prized possessions. In an ancient
tome, Cadderly had stumbled upon the formula for the very potent sleep poison
used by the drow elves. The exotic ingredients had not been found easily-one
fungus in particular could only be gained in deep tunnels far below Toril's
surface-and the arrangements to mix them-which the alchemist, Belago, had done
deep underground also-had been even more difficult to secure, but Cadderly had
persevered. With the blessings and backing of Dean Thobicus, his efforts had
produced five tiny vials of the poison.
At
least, Cadderly hoped it was the poison-one does not often find the opportunity
to test such things.
Even
with the apparent success of the brewing, though, there remained one severe
limitation. The potion was a drow mix, brewed in the strange magical emanations
found only in the Underdark, the lightless world beneath Toril's surface. It
was a well-known fact that if drow poison was exposed to the sun, even for a
moment, it would become useless in a very short while. The open air alone could
destroy the expensive mixture, so Cadderly had taken great steps, like the
spell of darkness, to protect his investment.
He
closed his eyes and worked from memory. First he unscrewed the tiny compartment
of his feathered ring and laid the top in a predetermined place to the side,
then he removed one of the vials from the box, carefully popping its cork. He
poured the gooey contents into his opened ring, then found and replaced the
feathered top.
Cadderly
breathed easier. If he had slipped at all, he would have wasted perhaps a
thousand gold pieces worth of ingredients and many weeks of labor. Also, if he
had spilled even a drop of the poison onto his hand, and if it had found its
way into a tiny scratch or nick, he no doubt would be snoozing soundly right
beside the box.
None of
that had happened. Cadderly was precise and disciplined when he needed to be,
and his many practice sessions with vials of water had paid off.
The
darkness disappeared within the confines of the sealed box when Cadderly closed
the lid. Ivan and Pikel were already in the room, surrounding the young
scholar, weapons ready and faces grim at the sight of the unexpected darkness.
"Just
yourself, then," Ivan grumbled relaxing his grip on his heavy, two-headed
axe.
Cadderly
could not immediately find his breath to reply. He just sat and stared at the
dwarven brothers. Both wore armor of interlocking rings, dusty from decades of
idleness and rusted in several spots. Ivan wore a helm fashioned with deer
antlers-an eight-pointer-while Pikel wore a cooking pot! For all his
precautionary armor, Pikel still wore his open-toed sandals.
Most
amazing of all, though, was Pikel's weapon. Looking upon it, Cadderly
understood Ivan's earlier reference. It was indeed a "tree," the
polished trunk of some black and smooth-barked variety that Cadderly did not
recognize. The club was fully four feet long, nearly as tall as Pikel, a foot
in diameter on the wide end, and less than half that on the narrow, gripping
end. Looped leather hand-grips were spiked on at various intervals to aid the
wielder, but still it seemed an awkward and cumbersome thing.
As if
he sensed Cadderly's private doubts, Pikel whipped the club about through
several attack and defense routines with obvious ease.
Cadderly
nodded his appreciation, sincerely relieved that he had not been on the
receiving end of any of Pikel's mock strikes.
"Are
ye set to go?" Ivan asked, adjusting his armor.
"Almost,"
Cadderly answered. "I have just a few more minor preparations, and I want
to look in on Danica before we go"
"How
can we help ye?" offered Ivan.
Cadderly
could see that the dwarves were both anxious to get on with it. He knew that it
had been many years since the Bouldershoulder brothers had walked into
adventure, many years spent cooking meals in the haven that was the Edificant
Library. It wasn't a bad life by anyone's measure, but the thought of imminent
danger and adventure obviously had worked an enchantment over the dwarves.
There was an unmistakable luster to their dark eyes and their movements were
agitated and nervous.
"Go
to Belago's alchemy shop," Cadderly replied, thinking it best to keep the
dwarves busy. He described the distillation equipment and the potion that
Belago was brewing for him. "If he has any more for me, bring it
back," Cadderly instructed, thinking the task simple enough.
The
dwarves already had hopped off down the hallway when Cadderly realized that he
hadn't seen Belago about lately, not since before the curse had taken hold of
the library. What had happened to the alchemist? Cadderly wondered. Was the
shop still operational? Were the proper mixtures for blending his 0il of Impact
still slipping in the precise amounts through the hoppers? Cadderly shrugged
away his worries, trusting in Ivan and Pikel to use their best judgment.
Percival was at the window again, chattering
with his customary excitement. Cadderly went over and leaned on the sill,
bending to put his face close to his little friend's and listen intently.
Cadderly could not understand the squirrel's talk, of course, no more than a
child could understand a pet dog's, but he and Percival had developed quite an
emotive rapport, and he knew well enough that Percival comprehended some simple
words or phrases, mostly those pertaining to food.
"I
will be gone for a while," Cadderly said. The squirrel probably wouldn't
understand so complex a message, he realized, but talking to Percival often
helped Cadderly sort through his own confusion. Percival never really provided
any answers, but Cadderly often found them hidden within his own words.
Percival
sat up on his hind legs, licking his forepaws and running them quickly over his
face.
"Something
bad has happened," Cadderly tried to explain, "something that I
caused. Now I am going to fix it."
His
somber tone, if not his words, had a calming effect on the rodent. Percival
stopped licking and sat very still.
"So
I will be gone," Cadderly continued, "down below the library, in the
deep tunnels that are no longer used."
Something
he had said apparently struck the squirrel profoundly. Percival ran in tight
circles, chattering and clicking, and it was a very long while before Cadderly
could calm the beast down. He knew that Percival had something important-by
Percival's standards-to tell him, but he had no time for the squirrel's
distractions.
"Do
not worry," Cadderly said, as much to himself as to Percival. "I will
return soon, and then all will be as it was." The words sounded hollow to
him. Things would not be as they had been. Even if he managed to close the
smoking bottle, and even if that simple act removed the curse, it wouldn't bring
back the priests of Ilmater or the dead gluttons in the dining room.
Cadderly
shook those dark thoughts away. He could not hope to succeed if he began his
quest in despair.
"Do
not worry!" he said again, firmly.
Again
the squirrel went crazy, and this time, Cadderly realized, from the direction
of Percival's gaze, the source of the excitement. Cadderly looked back over his
shoulder, expecting to see that Ivan and Pikel had returned.
He saw
instead Kierkan Rufo, and more pointedly, the dagger in Rufo's hand.
"What
is it?" Cadderly asked weakly, but he needed no verbal answer to decipher
the man's intent. Rufo's left eye was still bruised and closed, and his nose
pointed as much toward his cheek as straight ahead. His ugly wounds only
accentuated the look of sheer hatred in his cold, dark eyes.
"Where
is your light now?" the tall man sneered. "But then, it would not do
you much good, would it?" He limped noticeably, but his approach was
steady.
"What
are you doing?" Cadderly asked him.
"Is
not the mighty Cadderly smart enough to figure that out?" Rufo mocked him.
"You
do not want to do this," Cadderly said as calmly as he could. "There
are consequences ..."
"Wait?"
Rufo cried wildly. "Oh, but I do indeed want to do this. I want to hold
your heart in my hands. I want to bring it to your dear Danica and show her who
was the stronger."
Cadderly
looked for some retort. He thought of mentioning the obvious weakness in Rufo's
plan-if he did bring Cadderly's heart to Danica, she would kill him-but even
that, Cadderly guessed, would not stop Kierkan Rufo. Rufo was under the curse
fully, following its devious call with no regard for consequences. Reluctantly,
but with no apparent options, Cadderly slipped one finger inside the loop of
his spindle-disk cord and moved right up against the side of his bed.
Rufo
came straight in, dagger leading, and Cadderly rolled sideways across the bed,
just getting out of the angular man's long reach.
Rufo
jumped back quickly, faster than Cadderly expected he could move, to cut off Cadderly's
angle for the door. He rushed around the bottom of the bed, launching a wide,
arcing swing at Cadderly's belly.
Cadderly
easily kept back beyond the dagger, then he retaliated, snapping his
spindle-disks above Rufo's swinging arm. Rufo's already broken nose crackled
under the impact and a new stream of blood flowed thickly over the dried stains
on his lip. Rufo, obsessed with utter hatred, shook away the minor hit and came
on.
Though
the blow had not been very solid, it still had almost broken the rhythm of
Cadderly's working wrist. He managed to coax the disks back to his hand, but
the cord was now loosely wound and he couldn't immediately strike again
effectively. Rufo seemed to sense his weakness. He grinned wickedly and came in
again.
Percival
saved Cadderly's life, leaping from the window to land squarely on Rufo's face.
With a single swipe, Rufo sent the squirrel flying across the room, and
Percival had done no real damage, but Cadderly had not wasted the time.
With
Rufo distracted, he had snapped the spindle-disks straight down and back up
several times to realign and tighten the cord.
Rufo
seemed not to even notice the twin lines of blood running down his face from
his newest wound, a small bite on his cheek from Percival. "I will hold your
heart in my hands!" he promised again, laughing insanely.
Cadderly
jerked his arm once, and then again, feigning a throw to keep Rufo off guard.
Between dodges, Rufo managed a few weak thrusts that did not come near to
hitting the mark. Cadderly launched the disks finally, in a long and wide throw
that brought them to the very end of their reach. He flicked his wrist,
bringing the disks back to his grasp, but not with the usual suddenness.
Rufo
measured the pace of the throws and bided his time. The disks came on again,
and Rufo leaned back, then rushed toward Cadderly right behind them as they
retracted.
Cadderly's bait had worked. On this throw, he
had shortened up on the cord, bringing the spindle-disks smacking back into his
palm much more quickly than Rufo had anticipated. Rufo had barely taken his
first step when the young scholar's weapon shot out again, deliberately low.
Rufo
squealed in shock and pain and grasped at his smashed kneecap, his leg nearly
buckling. He was under the influences of the chaos curse, though, and nearly
impervious to pain. His squeal became a growl and he plowed ahead, slashing
wildly.
Again
Cadderly had to dive across the bed to avoid the blade, but when he came up
this time, Kierkan Rufo had already circled the bottom of the bed and stood
facing him. Cadderly knew that he was in trouble. He could not trade hits,
dagger against spindle-disks. Normally, the disks might have proven effective,
but in Rufo's state of mind, nothing short of a perfect and powerful strike would
slow him. That type of attack would be risky indeed for Cadderly, and he
doubted that he could even get one through his wild opponent's defenses.
They
traded feints and teasing lunges for a few moments, Rufo grinning and Cadderly
wondering if he had a better chance by diving out the window.
Then
the whole building shook suddenly as if it had been hit by lightning. The
explosion rolled on for several seconds and Cadderly understood its source when
he heard a single word from the corridor.
"Oo!"
Rufo hesitated
and glanced over his shoulder, toward the open door. Cadderly realized that his
sudden advantage wasn't really fair, but decided immediately to worry about
that later. He cocked his arm and let go with all his strength. Rufo turned
back just in time to catch the soaring disks right between the eyes.
Rufo's
head snapped straight back, and when he righted himself again, he was no longer
grinning. A startled, stupefied look came over him and his eyes crossed, as if
they were both straining to see the newest bruise.
Cadderly,
too transfixed to take his gaze from Rufo's contorted features, heard the
dagger hit the floor. A moment later, Rufo followed it down with a crash. Still
Cadderly did not react. He just stood there, his spindle-disks hanging by his
side at the end of their cord, spinning end-around-end.
When
Cadderly finally reached down to wind his weapon, Percival stomach turned over.
The spindle-disks were covered in blood and one had a piece of Rufo's eyebrow
glued onto it by the thick, drying red fluid. Cadderly slipped down to the bed
and let the disks fall to the floor. He felt betrayed, by himself and by his
toy.
All
priests of the library were required to train with some weapon, usually a more
conventional instrument of destruction, such as the quarterstaff, mace, or
club. Cadderly had begun with the staff, and could use his ram-headed walking
stick fairly well if the occasion arose, but he was never really comfortable
with carrying any weapon. He lived in a dangerous world, so he was told, but he
had spent the majority of his life in the secure confines of the Edificant
Library. He had never even seen a goblin, except for a dead one once, that
being one of the library's most wretched servants, who was said to be a
half-breed. The headmasters had not allowed him to bend the rule of
preparedness, though; every priest was required to train.
Cadderly
had come across the spindle-disks in an archaic halfling treatise, and had
quickly constructed his own. Some of the headmasters balked at his new choice,
calling it more a toy than a weapon, but it fit all of the requirements set out
in the ethical codes of Deneir. The vocal opposition, particularly Headmaster
Avery's, only strengthened Cadderly's resolve to use the ancient weapon.
For
Cadderly, the spindle-disks had replaced hours of savage fighting with hours of
enjoyable playing. He learned a dozen tricks, tests of skill that didn't hurt
anybody, with his new toy, for a toy he, too, secretly considered it. Now,
though, covered in Rufo's blood, the spindle-disks did not seem so amusing.
Rufo
groaned and shifted slightly, and Cadderly was glad that he was still alive. He
took a deep breath and reached down for the disks, determinedly reminding
himself of the gravity of the task ahead, and that he would have to be brave
and thick-skinned to see it through.
Percival
was on the bed at his side, lending further support. Cadderly rubbed a finger
down the white squirrel's smooth coat, then nodded gravely and rewound his
weapon.
"He
dead?" asked Ivan, entering the room with a smoldering Pikel at his heels.
Percival darted out the open window, and Cadderly, when he looked upon the
brothers, nearly joined him. Ivan's antlers, face, and beard, which stuck out
wildly in several directions, were blackened with soot, and one of Percival
heavy boots was now as open-toed as his brother's sandals.
Pikel
wasn't much better off. Flecks of ceramics dotted Percival sooty face, his
smile showed a missing tooth, and a shard of glass had actually embedded itself
right into his iron pot helmet.
"Belago
was not in?" Cadderly asked evenly.
Ivan
shrugged, "Not a sight of that one," he replied, "but me brother
found yer potion-what little there was of it" He held up the small catch
basin. "We figured ye'd be wanting more, so we ..."
"Turned
up the spigot," Cadderly finished for him.
"Boom!
"added Pikel.
"He
dead?" Ivan asked again, and the casual tone of the question sent a
shudder through Cadderly.
Both
dwarves noted the young scholar's discomfort. They glanced at each other and
shook their heads. "Ye'd best get the belly for it," Ivan said.
"If ye mean to go adventuring, ye'd best get the belly for things that are
likely to be falling yer way." He led Cadderly's gaze back to Kierkan
Rufo. "Or at yer feet!"
"I never meant to go adventuring,"
Cadderly replied, somewhat sourly.
"And
I never meant to be a cook," retorted Ivan, "but that's what I got,
ain't it? Ye said we got a job to do, and so we do. Let's get doing what needs
doing, and if some try to get in our way, well ..."
"He
is not dead," Cadderly interjected. "Put him on the bed and tie him
there."
Again
Ivan and Pikel exchanged glances, but this time, they nodded in favor of
Cadderly's determined tone.
"Oo,"
remarked Pikel, obviously impressed.
Cadderly
wiped his spindle-disks clean, picked up 1ms ram-headed walking stick and a
water skin, and headed down the hall. He was relieved to see Danica's door
still warped and tightly wedged, and even more relieved to hear Newander's calm
voice answering his knock.
"How
is she?" Cadderly asked immediately.
"She
is still deep within her meditation," Newander replied, "but she
appears comfortable enough."
Cadderly
conjured his meditative image of Danica, fighting back the insidious red haze.
"I
can reverse the spell and let you in," the druid offered.
"No,"
Cadderly replied, though he truly wanted to see Danica again. His last image of
Danica was a comforting one; he could not take the chance that something she
did now would worry him and steal his heart from his coming trials. On a more
practical level, Cadderly thought it best to let Newander preserve his magical
energies. "When I return, perhaps your spell will no longer be
needed," he said.
"Then
you want me to stay with Danica?"
"I
have the dwarves with me," Cadderly explained. "They are better
suited to the underground tunnels than a druid would be. Stay with her and keep
her safe."
Ivan
and Pikel came up then, and by the eager gleam in their eyes, Cadderly knew
that the time had come to set off. Cadderly glanced back at Danica's door
several times as they walked away, emotionally torn. A large part of him argued
against his journey, reasoned that his best course would be to go with his
armed friends, sit by Danica's side, and ride this whole nightmare to its conclusion.
Cadderly
did not find it difficult to argue against that irrational notion. Men were
dying all around him. How many more Kierkan Rufos lurked in the shadows, murder
in their hearts?
"Dear
Cadderly," came a purring voice that only reinforced the young scholar's
determination. Histra stood behind her chamber's door, opened just a crack, but
that was enough to show Cadderly and the dwarves that she wore no more than a
filmy, transparent negligee. "Do come in and sit with me."
"Oo!"
said Pikel.
"She's
wanting more than sitting, boy," chuckled Ivan.
Cadderly
ignored them all and ran right by the door. He felt Histra grab at him as he
passed and heard her door creak open wider.
"Come
back here!" the priestess of Sune screamed, jumping into the middle of the
hall.
"Oo!"
an admiring Pikel remarked again.
Histra
concentrated deeply, meaning to utter a magical command for her would-be lover
to "Return!" But Pikel, for all Percival obvious enchantment, kept a
pragmatic attitude about the situation. As Histra began her spell, he clamped a
sooty hand onto her rump and casually tossed her back into her room.
"Oo,"
Pikel uttered a third time when he moved into the room to close the door, and
Ivan, standing right behind his brother, whole-heartedly agreed. A dozen young
men lay sprawled about the room, exhausted by their exploits.
"Are
you so certain that you want to leave?" Histra purred at the dirty
brothers.
By the
time the blushing dwarves caught up to Cadderly, he was down to the first
floor, dipping his water skin into a font in the great hall.
"Wretched stuff," Ivan whispered to
Pikel. "Oils and water. Tried drinking it once." He hung his floppy
tongue out in disgust.
Cadderly
smiled at the dwarfs remarks. He had better uses than drinking in mind for the
holy water. When the skin was full, he took out a narrow tube, fitted on one
end with a rubbery ball of some gooey substance. He popped tins onto the open
tip of his water skin and capped it with a smaller ball of the same goo.
"You
will understand in time," was all the explanation he offered to the
curious dwarves.
The
Bouldershoulder brothers grew alarmed when the group entered the kitchen and
found the place full of priests. Headmaster Avery led the impromptu chefs,
though their progress was limited since each of them spent more time stuffing
food into his mouth than actually cooking anything.
More
alarming to Cadderly than the eating frenzy was his companions' reactions. Both
seemed on the verge of abandoning the quest, as though some greater compulsions
now pulled at them.
"Fight
it," Cadderly said to them, recognizing their growing desires as
curse-induced. Ivan and Pikel were protective of their kitchen, and both took
extreme satisfaction in keeping the hungriest priests of the library fed to
contentment. They looked around at the messy kitchen and the gluttonous
priests, and for a moment, Cadderly feared that he would be traveling down to
the lower catacombs alone. But Newander's claims of dwarven resistance to
magical enchantment held true this time, for the Bouldershoulders shrugged
unhappily at the disaster that had befallen their space, then pushed Cadderly
on, prodding him toward the door to the wine cellar.
The
musty stairs were dark and quiet; the torches lining the wall had not been
tended. Cadderly opened his light tube and moved down a few steps, waiting
there for the brothers to strike torches. Ivan came in last and closed and
bolted the iron-bound door, even taking the trouble to slide an iron locking
bar into place.
"We've
as much trouble behind as ahead," the dwarf explained to Cadderly's
questioning look. "If that group gets as thirsty as they are hungry,
they'll only bring trouble along with them!"
The
reasoning seemed sound enough, so Cadderly turned and started down. Pikel
grabbed him, though, and took up the lead, tapping his heavy club to his pot
helmet.
"Keep
yerself between us," Ivan explained. "We've been on this road
before!"
His
confidence comforted Cadderly, but the clamor as the bulky dwarves thumped and
rattled down the stairs did not.
Their
lights intruded into absolute darkness as they came down, but all three sensed
that they were not alone. Beside the first wine rack, they found their first
clues that someone else had come this way. Broken glass covered the floor and
many bottles-bottles that Cadderly had inventoried only a few days before-were
missing. The trail led to yet another dead priest. His stomach grossly
distended, he lay curled on the floor, surrounded by emptied bottles.
They
heard a shuffle to the side and Cadderly put a narrow beam of light down
between the wine racks. Another priest was in there, trying futilely to stand.
He was too drunk to even notice the light, and his stomach, too, bulged and
sloshed. Despite his stupor, he still held a bottle to his lips, stubbornly
forcing more liquid down his throat.
Cadderly
started toward the drunk, but Ivan held him back. "Show me yer door,"
Ivan said to him, then the dwarf nodded to Pikel. As Cadderly and Ivan headed
deeper into the cellar, Pikel moved the other way, between the racks. Cadderly
soon heard a thump, a groan, and a bottle breaking on the stone floor.
"For
his own good," Ivan explained.
They
came to the casks where Cadderly had been found and, once again, the young
scholar grew confused and frustrated that there was no door to be found. Ivan
and Pikel shoved all the casks far away, and the three of them searched every
inch of the wall.
Cadderly
stuttered an apology; perhaps his entire theory was misguided. Ivan and Pikel
stubbornly continued their search, though, keeping faith in their friend. They
found their answers not on the unremarkable wall, but on a series of scratches
in the floor.
"The
casks were dragged," Ivan asserted. He bent low to study the dust, the
absence of dust, in the marks. "Not too long ago."
Cadderly's
focused beam made the tracking easy and as they moved across the room, he began
to get more excited. "How could I have missed this?" he said. He
turned the light back to the wine racks. "Ws-Rufo and I-came from over
there, so the door could not have been back where we found the piled casks. It
was a purposeful deception. I should have known."
"Ye
took a bit on the head," Ivan reminded him. "And it's a clever
trick."
The
trail led to yet another cask, tight up against the wall. The companions knew
before Ivan even kicked it aside that the mysterious door would indeed be found
behind it. Ivan nodding and smiling, moved right up to the door and pulled it,
but it did not budge.
"Locked,"
the dwarf grunted, examining a keyhole above the pull ring. He looked to
Percival brother, who nodded eagerly.
"Pikel's
one for unlocking doors," Ivan explained to Cadderly, and Cadderly got the
point when Pikel leveled his tree trunk like a battering ram and lined himself
up with the door.
"Hold!"
Cadderly said. "I have a better way."
"Ye're
a lockpick, too?" Ivan asked.
"Oh,"
groaned a disappointed Pikel.
"You
could say that," Cadderly replied smugly, but instead of instruments for
picking locks, he produced the hand-held crossbow. Cadderly had been hoping
that he would get to try out Percival newest invention, and he was hardly able
to keep from shaking as he cranked the bow and loaded a dart.
"Stand
back," he warned, taking aim at the keyhole. The crossbow clicked and the
dart plunked in. A split second later, the momentum of the dart collapsed its
weak middle section, crushing the vial of 0il of Impact, and the ensuing
explosion left a blackened and blasted hole where the lock had been. The door
creaked open only an inch but hung there loosely.
"Oh,
I'm wanting one of those!" Ivan cried happily.
"Oo
oi!" agreed Pikel.
Their
glee was short-lived, for behind the open door they found, not the top of the
broken stairway, as Cadderly had predicted, but a brick wall.
"New
work," Ivan muttered after a quick inspection. He cast a sly glance
Cadderly's way. "Ye got a dart for this one, boy?"
Ivan
didn't wait to hear an answer. He ran his hands over the wall, pushing at
certain points as though he was testing its strength. "Pikel's got the
key," he declared and he moved out of the way.
Cadderly
started to protest, but Pikel paid him no heed. The dwarf began a curious
whining sound and his stubby legs churned up and down, running in place, as
though he were winding himself up like a spring. Then, with a grunt, Pikel
charged, Percival battering ram tight against his side.
Bricks
and mortar flew wildly. Several fiery explosions indicated that warding glyphs
had been placed on the other side of the wall, but Pikel's furious charge was
not slowed, by either the flimsy wall or the magical wards. Neither was Pikel
able to halt his momentum. As Cadderly had told them before, and as he had
tried to warn them again, the stairway beyond the short landing was down.
"Ooooooooo!"
came Pikel's diminishing wail, followed by a dull thump.
"Me
brother!" Ivan cried, and before Cadderly could stop him, he, too, charged
through the opening. His torch flared in the dust cloud for just a moment, then
both the light and the dwarf dropped from sight.
Cadderly
winced and shuddered at Ivan's final words: "I can see the grou...!"
The
Walking Dead
Cadderly
came down the rope slowly and in control, using a technique he had seen
illustrated in a manuscript. He held the rope both in front of and behind him,
looping it under one thigh and using his legs to control his descent. He had
heard the dwarven brothers grumbling while he was tying off the rope, so he
knew that they had survived the fall. That fact offered some comfort, at least.
As he neared the stone floor, within the area of torchlight, he saw Pikel
running about in circles, with Ivan close on his heels, smacking out the last
wisps of smoke from his brother's smoldering behind.
"Oo,
oo, oo, oo!" Pikel cried, slapping at his own rump whenever he got the
chance.
"Hold
still, ye stinking oak kisser!" Ivan bellowed, whacking wildly.
"Quiet,"
Cadderly cautioned them as he dropped down to the tunnel.
"Oo,"
Pikel replied, giving one last brisk rub. The dwarf then noticed the stonework
in the walls and forgot all about the
sting. He wandered off happily to
investigate.
"Somebody
wanted to keep us outa here," Ivan reasoned. "His fire-wards got me
brother good, right on the backside!"
Cadderly
agreed with the dwarfs conclusion and sensed that he should know who had set
out the glyphs, that he had seen someone in the same room as the bottle ... .
He
couldn't remember, though, and he had no time now to meditate and explore his
suspicions. More importantly, neither dwarf had suffered any real damage;
Ivan's antler-topped helmet had even been cleaned a bit by the jolt.
"How
far to yer cursed flask?" Ivan asked. "Do ye think we'll be seeing
more of the magical barriers?" Ivan's face lit up at the notion. "You
gotta let a dwarf walk first if you think so, ye know." He pounded a fist
onto his breastplate. "A dwarf can take it. A dwarf can eat it up and spit
it back at the one who set it! Do ye think we'll be meeting that one? The one
who put the fire-ward up there? I've a word to speak with that one. He burned
me brother! No, I'm not for letting one go and bum me brother!"
The
look in Ivan's eyes grew ever more distant as he spoke, and Cadderly realized
that the dwarf was walking a tentative line of control. Off to the side, Pikel,
too, had become overly consumed. He was down on his hands and knees, sniffing
at the cracks in the wall and uttering an excited "Oo!" every so
often. A dozen frantic spiders scurried to get free of their own webs,
hopelessly entangled in Pikel's tough beard.
Cadderly
set his rock crystal spindle-disks spinning end-around-end in front of Ivan's
face and used his light tube to focus a narrow beam on them. The dwarf's
talking faded away as he fell more and more into the mesmerizing dance of the
light on the disks' many facets.
"Remember
why we are here," Cadderly prompted the dwarf. "Concentrate, Ivan
Bouldershoulder. If we do not remove the curse, then all the library, the
Edificant Library, will be lost." Cadderly couldn't be certain whether his
words or the dancing light on the disks had reminded Ivan to resist the
stubborn curse, but whatever the cause, the dwarfs eyes popped wide, as if he
had just come from a deep slumber, and he shook his head so wildly that he had
to lean on his double-bladed axe to keep from falling over.
"Which
way, lad?" the now lucid dwarf asked.
"That's
more to the point," Cadderly remarked under his breath. He glanced over at
Pikel and wondered if the same technique would be needed on him. It didn't
matter, Cadderly decided at once. Pikel wasn't really wide awake even when he
was wide awake.
Cadderly
looked down at the floor, searching for some sign of his previous passing, but
found nothing. He sent his light down to either side of the bricked corridor,
but both ways seemed identical and jogged no memories for him.
"This
way," he decided simply to get them moving, and he stepped past Ivan.
"Do bring your brother." Cadderly heard a clang over his shoulder-axe
on cooking pot, he supposed- and Ivan and Pikel came hustling up to his side a
moment later.
After
many dead ends and many circular treks that brought them right back to where
they had started, they came to an ancient storage area of wide corridors lined
with rotted crates. "I was here," Cadderly insisted, speaking the
words aloud in an attempt to jog his memory.
Ivan
dropped to the floor, seeking to confirm Cadderly's declaration. As with all
the corridors, though, no dear tracks were disenable. Clearly the dust had been
recently disturbed, but either someone had deliberately brushed away any sure
signs or simply too many had passed by this point for the dwarf to track.
Cadderly
dosed his eyes and tried to envision his previous passage. Many images of his
wanderings in the tunnels flooded through him, scenes of skeletons and
corridors lined with sinister-looking alcoves, but they wouldn't connect in any
logical pattern. They had no focal point, no starting ground where Cadderly
could begin to sort them out.
Then he
heard the heartbeat.
Somewhere in the unseen distance, water was
dripping, steadily, rhythmically. That sound had been here with him, Cadderly
knew. It came from no particular direction, and he had not used it as any sort
of a guiding beacon his first time through, but now, he realized, it could
guide his memory. For, though its interval was constant, its volume became
louder and more insistent at some bends in the passages, softer and more
distant at others. Too engaged with other pressing problems his first time
through, Cadderly had only noticed it on a subconscious level, but that had left
an imprint on his memory. Now Cadderly trusted his instincts. Instead of
cluttering his consciousness with futile worries, he moved along and let his
subconscious memories guide his steps.
Ivan
and Pikel didn't question him; they had nothing better to suggest. It wasn't
until they came to a three-way arch, and Cadderly's face brightened noticeably,
that even Cadderly really believed he knew where he was going.
"To
the left," Cadderly insisted, and indeed, the left archway was less thick
with cobwebs than the right, as if someone had passed through there. Cadderly
turned back to the dwarves just as he started under the archway, a look of
trepidation, even outright dread, on his face.
"What've
ye seen?" Ivan demanded, and he pushed his way past Cadderly, under the
arches.
"The
skeletons," Cadderly started to explain.
Pikel
hopped to his guard, and Ivan held his torch far out in front, peering into the
dusty gloom. "I see no skeletons!" Ivan remarked after a short pause.
The
encounter with the walking dead remained a nightmarish blur for Cadderly. He
couldn't quite remember where he had encountered the skeletons, and he didn't
know why the thought had suddenly come to him now. "They might be in this
area," he offered in a whisper. "Something makes me believe they are
nearby."
Ivan
and Pikel relaxed visibly and leaned to the side in unison to glance at each
other around the young scholar. "Come on, then," Ivan huffed,
following his torch's clearing fire into the left passage.
"The
skeletons," Cadderly announced again as soon as he came through the
archway. He knew this place, a crate-lined corridor wide enough for ten to walk
abreast. A bit farther, alcoves lined the corridor's walls on both sides.
"We
going to start that again?" asked Ivan.
Cadderly
waved Percival tight beam in the direction of the alcoves. "In
there," he explained.
His
warning seemed ominous, at least to him, but the dwarves reacted to it as
though it was an invitation. Rather than dim the lights and creep along, they
both leaped out in front and strode defiantly down the center of the corridor,
stopping in front of the first alcove.
"Oo
oi" remarked Pikel.
"Ye're
right, lad," agreed Ivan. "It's a skeleton." He propped his axe
up on one shoulder, put his other hand on his hip, and walked right up to the
alcove.
"Well?"
he cried at the bones. "Are ye going to just sit there and rot, or are you
going to come out and block me way?"
Cadderly
came up tentatively, despite the dwarves' bravado.
"Just
as ye said," Ivan said to him when he arrived, "but not moving about
much, as I see it."
"They
were moving," Cadderly insisted, "chasing me."
The
brothers leaned to the side-they were getting used to this maneuver-and glanced
at each other around Cadderly.
"I
did not dream it!" Cadderly snarled at them, taking a step to the side to
block their exchanged stares. "Look!" He started for the skeleton,
then had second thoughts about that course and put his tight beam into the
alcove instead. "See the cobwebs hanging freely in there? And the bits of web
on the bones? They were attached, but now the webs hang free. Either this
skeleton has been out of the alcove recently, or someone came down here and cut
the strands from it, to make it look as though it has been out of the
alcove."
"Yerself
was the only one down here," Ivan blurted before he even realized the
accusatory connotations of his statement.
"Do
you believe I cut the strands?" Cadderly cried. "I would not want to
go near the thing. Why would I waste the time and effort to do that?"
Again
came the dwarven lean-and-look maneuver, but when Ivan came up straight this
time, his expression was less doubting. "Then why are they sitting
tight?" he asked. "If they want a fight, why ... ?"
"Because
we did not attack them!" Cadderly interrupted suddenly. "Of
course," he continued, the revelation coming clearer. "The skeletons
did not rise against me until I attacked one of them."
"Why'd
ye bit a pile of bones?" Ivan had to ask.
"I
did not," Cadderly stuttered. "I mean... I thought I saw it
move."
"Aha!"
cried Pikel.
Ivan
elaborated on his excited brother's conclusion. "Then the skeleton moved
before ye hit it, and ye're wrong now in yer thinking."
"No,
it did not move!" Cadderly shot back. "I thought it had, but it was
only a rat or a mouse, or something like that."
"Mouses
don't look like bones," Ivan said dryly. Cadderly expected the remark.
Pikel
squeaked and crinkled his nose, putting on his best rodent face.
"If
we just leave them alone, they might let us pass," Cadderly reasoned.
"Whoever animated them probably gave them instructions to defend
themselves."
Ivan
thought about it for a moment, then nodded. The reasoning seemed sound enough.
He motioned to Percival brother, and Pikel understood the silent request. The
green-bearded dwarf pushed Cadderly out of the way, lowered his club like a
battering ram, and, before the startled young scholar could move to stop him,
charged full speed into the alcove. The terrific impact reduced the skull to a
pile of flecks and dust and Pikel's continuing momentum scattered the rest of
the bones in every direction.
"That
one won't be getting up to fight us," remarked a satisfied Ivan, brushing
a rib off Percival brother's shoulder as Pikel came back out.
Cadderly
stood perfectly still, his mouth hanging open in absolute disbelief.
"We
had to check it," Ivan insisted. "Ye want to be leaving walking
skeletons behind us?"
"Uh
oh," groaned Pikel. Cadderly and Ivan turned at the call, Cadderly's light
beam showing the source of Pikel's dismay. This skeleton would not rise to
fight them, as Ivan had said, but dozens of others were already up and moving.
Ivan
clapped Cadderly hard on the back. "Good thinking, lad!" the dwarf
congratulated him. "Ye were right! It took a hit to rouse them!"
"That
is a good thing?" Cadderly asked. Images of Percival last trip through
here came rushing back to him, particularly when he had backed away from the
first skeleton he had struck, into the waiting grasp of another. Cadderly spun
to the side. The skeleton from across the corridor was nearly upon him.
Pikel
had seen it, too. Undaunted, the dwarf grasped Percival club with both hands
down low on the handle and stepped in with a mighty roundhouse swing, catching
the monster on the side of the head and sending the skull soaring down the
corridor behind them. The remaining bones just stood shakily for the moment it
took Pikel to smash them down.
Cadderly
watched the batted skull until it disappeared into the darkness, then he
shouted, "Run!"
"Run!"
Ivan echoed, dropping his torch, and he and Pikel charged down the corridor,
straight at the advancing host.
That
wasn't exactly what Cadderly had in mind, but when he realized that there was
no way he was going to turn the wild brothers around, he shrugged Percival
shoulders, took out his spindle-disks, and followed, seriously pondering the
value of friendship when weighed against the burdens.
The
closest skeletons did not react quickly enough to the dwarven charge. Ivan
sliced one cleanly in half with a great cut of his axe, but then, on his back
swing, snagged the weapon's other head in the rib cage of his next intended
victim. Never one to quibble over finesse, the dwarf heaved mightily, pulling
his weapon and the entangled skeleton into the air around him and then slamming
the whole jumble into the next nearest monster. The two skeletons were
hopelessly hooked together, but so was Ivan's axe.
"I
need ye, me brother!" Ivan cried as yet another skeleton moved in on him,
reaching for his face with dirty, sharp finger bones.
Pikel had
fared better initially, plowing into the first ranks like a boulder bouncing
down a mountainside, breaking three skeletons apart and pushing the rest back
several feet. The rush had not been without consequences, though, for Pikel
stumbled down to one knee before he could halt his momentum. The fearless
undead came in all around the dwarf, advancing from every angle. Pikel grasped
his club down low, held it out to arm's length, and began turning fast circles.
The
skeletons were mindless creatures, not thinking fighters. Their outstretched
arms leading, they came right in fearlessly, stupidly, and Pikel's whirling
club whittled them down, fingers, hands, and arms. The dwarf laughed wildly as
each bone went humming away, thinking he could keep this up forever.
Then
Pikel heard his brother's call. He stopped his spin and tried to discern the
right direction, then sent his stubby legs pumping in place, building momentum.
"Oooo!"
the dwarf roared, and off he sprang, bursting out the side of the skeletal ring.
Unfortunately, his dizziness had deceived him, and as soon as he broke clear of
the ring, he slammed headfirst into the corridor's brick wall.
"Oo,"
came a hollow echo from under the pot helmet of the now seated Pikel.
Only a single skeleton had slipped between
the dwarves to face Cadderly, odds that the young scholar thought he could
handle. He danced about, up on the balls of his feet as Danica once had shown
him, flicking out a few warning shots with his spindle-disks.
The
skeleton paid no heed to his dancing feints, or the harmless throws, and
continued straight in for Cadderly's mass.
The
spindle-disks smacked into its cheekbone and spun its head right around so that
is was looking behind itself. Still the skeleton came on, and Cadderly fired
again, this time trying to break the thing's body. As soon as he threw, he
realized his error.
The
disks slipped through the skeleton's rib cage, but got tangled when Cadderly
tried to retract them. To make matters worse, the sudden tug of the snag
tightened the loop on Cadderly's finger, binding him to the skeleton.
Blindly,
the monster swiped out at him. Cadderly dove straight for the floor, took up
his walking stick, and shoved it through the rib cage, hoping to dislodge his
spindle-disks. As soon as the tip of the stick wedged into the skeleton's
backbone, the crafty young scholar changed his tactics. An image of a fulcrum
and lever popped into his mind and he let go of his walking stick, then slammed
its head with all his might.
The rib
fulcrum held firm and the shock of Cadderly's downward blow shot up along the
skeleton's backbone and sent its head straight into the air, where it
ricocheted off the corridor ceiling. The shattering jolt broke apart the rest
of the undead thing.
Cadderly
congratulated himself many times as he worked both his weapons free, but his
relief lasted only until he looked farther down the corridor, into the
flickering light of Ivan's dropped torch. Both dwarves were down, Ivan unarmed
and trying to keep out of one skeleton's reach, and Pikel, sitting near the
other wall, his pot down to his shoulders, with a whole host of skeletons
advancing on him.
* * * *
*
Druzil
peered suspiciously from between his folded bat wings at the dark and quiet
altar room. The brazier fire was down to embers now-Barjin would not leave an
interplanar gate burning while he slept-and there was no other light source.
That hardly hindered the imp, who had spent eons wandering about the swirling
gray mists of the lower planes.
All
seemed as it should. To the side of the room, Barjin slept peacefully,
confident that his victory was at hand. Mullivy and Khalif flanked the doorway,
as still as death and instructed not to move unless one of the conditions set
by Barjin had been met.
To
Druzil's uneasy relief, none of those conditions apparently had. No intruders
had entered the room, the door remained shut fast, and Druzil sensed no probing
wizard eyes nor any distant call from Aballister.
The
altar room's serenity did not diminish the imp's sense that something was
amiss, though. Something had disturbed Druzil's slumber; he had thought it
another call from that persistent Aballister. Druzil tightened his wings and
sank within himself, turning from his physical senses to the more subtle inner
feelings, empathic sensations, that served an imp as well as eyes might serve a
human. He pictured the area beyond the closed door, mentally probing the maze
of twisting corridors.
The
imp's bat wings popped open suddenly. The skeletons were up!
Druzil
reached into his magical energies and faded to invisibility. A single flap of
his wings carried him between Mullivy and the mummy, and he quickly uttered the
key word to prevent Barjin's series of warding glyphs from exploding as he
slipped out of the room. Then he was off, flying sometimes, creeping on clawed
toes at others, picking his way carefully toward the outermost burial chambers.
Already his physical hearing had confirmed what he had sensed, for a battle was
in full swing.
The imp paused and considered the options
before him. The skeletons were fighting, there could be no doubt, and that
could only mean that intruders had come down to this level. Perhaps they had
simply wandered down here in their curse-induced stupor, vagabond priests soon
to be dispatched by the undead force, but Druzil could not dismiss the
possibility that whoever it was had come with a more definite purpose in mind.
Druzil
glanced over his shoulder, down the corridors that would take him back to
Barjin. He was torn. If he sent his thoughts to Barjin, established that
personal familiar-master telepathic link, he would be bringing his relationship
with the priest to a level of which Aballister certainly would not approve. if
the wizard back at Castle Trinity ever found out, he might well banish Druzil
back to his home plane-a fate that the imp, with the chaos curse finally
unleashed on the world, certainly did not desire.
Yet it
was Barjin, the imp reminded himself, not Aballister, who had taken the
forefront in this battle. Resourceful Barjin, the powerful priest, was the one
who had struck boldly and effectively against the heart of law in the Snowflake
region.
Druzil
sent Percival thoughts careening down the corridors, into the altar room, and
into the sleeping priest's mind. Barjin was awake in a second, and a moment
later, he understood that danger had come to his domain.
I will
divert them if they get past the skeletons, Druzil assured the priest, but
prepare your defenses!
* * * *
*
Ivan
knew he was running out of room. One hand raked at his shoulder, and all that
he got for his retaliatory punch was a torn fingernail. The experienced dwarf
decided to use his head. He tucked his powerful little legs under him, and the
next time the pursuing skeleton lunged for him, he sprang forward.
Ivan's helmet was fitted with the antlers of
an eight-point deer, a trophy Ivan had bagged with a "dwarven
bow"-that being a hammer balanced for long-range throwing-in a challenge
hunt against a visiting elf from Shilmista Forest. In mounting the horns on his
helmet, clever Ivan had used an old lacquering trick involving several
different metals, and he only prayed that they would prove strong enough now.
He
drove into the skeleton's chest, knowing that his horns would likely be
entangled, then he stood up and straightened his neck, hoisting the skeleton
overhead. Ivan wasn't certain how much his maneuver had gained him, though, for
the skeleton, suspended perpendicularly across the dwarfs shoulders, continued
its raking attacks.
Ivan
whipped his head back and forth, but the skeleton's sharp fingers found a hold
on the side of his neck and dug a deep cut. Others were advancing.
Ivan
found his answer along the side of the corridor, in an alcove. He could slip in
there easily enough, but could the skeleton fit through, laid out sideways?
Ivan lowered his head and charged, nearly bursting with laughter. The impact as
the skeleton's head and legs connected with the arch surrounding the alcove
slowed the dwarf only a step. Bones, dust, and webs flew, and Ivan's helmet
nearly tore free of his head as the dwarf tumbled in headlong. He came back out
into the corridor a moment later with half a rib cage and several web strands
hanging loosely from his horns. He had defeated the immediate threat, but a
whole corridor of enemies still remained.
Cadderly
saved Pikel. The dazed dwarf sat near the wall, with a ringing in his ears that
would last for a long time, and with a host of skeletons swiftly dosing.
"Druid,
Pikel!" Cadderly yelled, trying to find something that would shake the
dwarf back to reality. "Think like a druid. Envision the animals! Become
an animal!"
Pikel
lifted the front of his pot helmet and glanced absently toward Cadderly.
"Eh?"
"Animals!"
Cadderly screamed. "Druids and animals. An animal could get up and away!
Spring .. . snake, Pikel. Spring like a coiled snake!"
The pot
helmet went back down over the dwarfs eyes, but Cadderly was not dismayed, for
he heard a hissing sound coming from under it and he noticed the slight
movement as Pikel tensed the muscles in his arms and legs.
A dozen
skeletons reached for him.
And the
coiled snake snapped.
Pikel
came up in a wild rush, batting with both arms, kicking with both legs, even
gnawing on one skeleton's forearm. As soon as he regained his footing, the
dwarf scooped up his club and began the most vicious and frantic assault
Cadderly had ever witnessed. He took a dozen hits but didn't care. Only one
thought, the memory that his brother had called for him, rang clear in the
would-be druid's mind.
He saw
Ivan coming out of the alcove and spotted Ivan's axe, caught fast in the tangle
of two skeletons making their unsteady way toward Ivan. Pikel caught up to them
long before they reached his brother.
The
tree trunk club smashed again and again, beating the skeletons, punishing them
for stealing Ivan's weapon.
"That'll
be enough, brother," Ivan cried happily, scooping his axe from the bone
pile. "There are walking foes still to smash!"
Cadderly
outmaneuvered the slow-moving skeletons to rejoin the dwarves. "Which
way?" he gasped.
"Forward,"
Ivan replied without hesitation.
"Oooi!"
Pikel agreed.
"Just
get between us," growled Ivan, blasting the skull from a skeleton who had
ventured too near.
As they
worked their way down the corridor, Cadderly's tactics improved. He kept his
spindle-disks flying for skulls only-less chance of getting them hooked that
way-and used his walking stick to ward off the reaching monsters.
Much
more devastating to the skeletons were the two fighters flanking the young scholar.
Pikel growled like a bear, barked like a dog, hooted like an owl, and hissed
like a snake, but whatever sound came from his mouth did not alter his crushing
attack routines with his tree trunk club.
Ivan
was no less furious. The dwarf accepted a hit for every tat he gave out, but
while the skeletons managed to inflict sometimes painful scratches, each of
Ivan's strikes shattered another of their ranks into scattered and useless
bones.
The
trio worked its way through one archway, around several sharp comers, and
through yet another archway. Soon more of the skeletal host was behind them
than in front, and the gap only widened as less and less resistance stood to
hinder their way. The dwarves seemed to enjoy the now lopsided fight and
Cadderly had to continually remind them of their more important mission in
order to prevent them from turning back to find more skeletons to whack.
Finally
they came clear of the threat and Cadderly had a moment to pause and try to get
his bearings. He knew that the door, the critical door with the light shining
through, could not be too far from here, but the crisscrossing corridors
offered few landmarks to jog his memory.
* * * *
*
Druzil
concluded from the sheer quantity of smashed skeletons that these invaders were
not stupefied victims of the chaos curse. He quickly closed in behind the
fleeing intruders, taking care, even though he was invisible, to keep to the
safety of sheltered shadows. Never allowing Cadderly and the dwarves to get out
of his sight, the imp used his telepathy to contact Barjin again, and this time
he asked the cleric for direct help.
Give me
the commands for the skeletons, Druzil demanded.
Barjin
hesitated, his own evil methods forcing him to consider if the imp might be
attempting to wrest control.
Give
the words to me or prepare to face a formidable band, Druzil warned. I can
serve you well now, my master, but only if you choose wisely.
Barjin
had come out of his sleep to find danger suddenly close, and he meant to take
no chances of losing what he had so painstakingly achieved. He still didn't
trust the imp-no wise master ever would-but he figured that he could handle
Druzil if it came down to that. Besides, if the imp tried to turn the skeletons
against him, he could merely exert his own will and wrest back control of them.
Destroy
the intruders! came Barjin's telepathic command, and he followed it with a
careful recounting of all the command words and phrases recognizable by his
skeletal force.
Druzil
needed no prodding from Barjin; protecting the flask of his precious chaos
curse was more important to him than it ever could be to the priest. He
memorized all the proper phrases and inflections for handling the skeletons,
then, seeing that Cadderly and the dwarves had stopped to rest in an
out-of-the-way and empty passage, went back to retrieve the remaining undead
forces.
The
next time the intruders met them, the skeletons would not be a disorganized and
directionless band. "We will surround and strike in unison," Druzil
vowed to the skeletons, though the words meant nothing to the unthinking
monsters. Druzil had to hear them, though. "We will tear apart the dwarves
and the human," the imp went on, growing more excited. The chaotic imp
couldn't immediately contain his hopes there, pondering the possibilities of
taking the skeletal host against Barjin. Druzil dismissed the absurd notion as
soon as he had thought of it. Barjin served him well for now, as Aballister had
done.
But who
could guess what the future might hold?
Danica's
Battle
She
found herself in the throes of repeated urges, building to overwhelming
crescendos and then dying away to be replaced by other insistent impulses.
Surely this was Danica's definition of Hell, the discipline and strict codes of
her beloved religion swept away by waves of sheer chaos. She tried to staunch
those waves, to beat back the images of Iron Skull, the urges she had felt when
Cadderly had touched her, and the many others, but she found no secure
footholds in her violently shifting thoughts.
Danica
touched upon something that even the chaos could not disrupt. To fight the
battle of the present, the young woman sent her thoughts into the simpler past.
She saw
her father, Pavel, again, his small but powerful frame and blond hair turning
to white on the temples. Mostly, Danica saw his gray eyes, always tender when
they looked upon his little girl. There, too, was her mother and namesake,
solid, immovable, and wildly in love with her father. Danica was the exact
image of that woman, except that her mother's hair was raven black, not blond,
showing closer resemblance to the woman's partially eastern background. She was
petite and fair like her daughter, with the same clear brown, almond eyes, not
dark but almost tan, that could sparkle with innocence or turn fast to
unbreakable determination.
Danica's
images of her parents faded and were replaced by the wrinkled, wizened image of
mysterious Master Turkel. His skin was thick, leathery, from uncounted hours
spent sitting in the sun and meditating atop a mountain, high above the lines
of shading trees. Truly he was a man of extremes, of explosive fighting
abilities buried under seemingly limitless serenity. His ferocity during
sparring matches often scared Danica, made her think the man was out of control.
But
Danica had learned better than to believe that; Master Turkel was never out of
control. Discipline was at the core of his, their, religion, the same
discipline that Danica needed now.
She had
labored beside her dear master for six years, until that day when Turkel
honestly admitted that he could give no more to her. Despite her anticipation
at studying the actual works of Penpahg D'Ahn, it had been a sad day for Danica
when she left Westgate and started down the long road to the Edificant Library.
Then
she had found Cadderly.
Cadderly!
She had loved him from the first moment she had ever seen him, chasing a white
squirrel along the groves lining the winding road to the library's front door.
Cadderly hadn't noticed Danica right away, not until he tumbled headlong into a
bush of clinging burrs. That first look struck Danica profoundly both then and
now, as she battled to reclaim her identity. Cadderly had been embarrassed, to
be sure, but the sudden flash of light in his eyes, eyes even purer gray than
Danica's father's, and the way his mouth dropped open just a hint, then widened
in a sheepish, boyish smile, had sent a curious warm sensation through Danica's
whole body.
The
courtship had been equally thrilling and unpredictable;
Danica never knew what ingenious event
Cadderly would spring on her next. But entrenched beside Cadderly's
unpredictability was a rock-solid foundation that Danica could depend upon.
Cadderly gave her friendship, an ear for her problems and excitement alike,
and, most of all, respect for her and her studies, never competing against
Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn for her time.
Cadderly?
Danica
heard an echo deep in her mind, a soothing but determined call from Cadderly,
urging her to "fight."
Fight?
Danica
looked inward, to those overwhelming urges and deeper, to their source, then
she saw the manifestation, as had Cadderly. It was within her and not in the
open room around her. She envisioned a red mist permeating her thoughts, an
ungraspable force compelling her to its will and not her own. It was a fleeting
vision, gone an instant after she glimpsed it, but Danica had always been a
stubborn one. She summoned back the vision with all her will and this time she
held onto it. Now she had an identified enemy, something tangible to battle.
"Fight,
Danica," Cadderly had said. She knew that; she heard the echoes. Danica
formulated her thoughts in direct opposition to the mist's urging. She denied
whatever her impulses told her to do and to think. If her heart told her that
something was correct, she called her heart a liar.
"Iron
Skull," compelled a voice inside her.
Danica
countered with a memory of pain and warm blood running down her face, a memory
that revealed to her how stupid she had been in attempting to smash the stone.
* * * *
*
It was
not a call heard by physical ears; it needed neither the wind nor open air to
carry it. The energy emanating from Barjin's necromancer's stone called to a
specific group only, to monsters of the negative plane, the land of the dead.
A few
short miles from the Edificant Library, where once there had been a small
mining town, the call was heard.
A
ghoulish hand, withered and filthy, tore up through the sod, reaching into the
world of the living. Another followed, and another, just a short distance away.
Soon the gruesome pack of ghouls was up out of their holes, drooling tongues
hanging between yellow fangs.
Running
low, knuckles to the ground, the ghoul pack made for the stone's call, for the
Edificant Library.
* * * *
*
Newander
could only guess what inner turmoil racked the young woman. Sweat soaked
Danica's clothes and she squirmed and groaned under the tightly binding vines.
At first, the druid had thought her in pain, and he quickly prepared a sedating
spell to calm her. Fortunately, it occurred to Newander that Danica's nightmare
might be self-inflicted, that she might have found, as Cadderly had promised,
some way to fight back the curse.
Newander
sat beside the bed and placed his hands gently but firmly on Danica's arms.
While he did not call to her, or do anything else that might hinder her
concentration, he watched her closely, fearful lest his guess be wrong.
Danica
opened her eyes. "Cadderly?" she asked. Then she saw that the man
over her was not Cadderly, and she realized, too, that she was tightly strapped
down. She flexed her muscles and twisted as much as the vines would allow,
testing their play.
"Calm,
dear lass," Newander said softly, sensing her growing distress. "Your
Cadderly was here, but he could not stay. He set me to watch over you."
Danica
stopped her struggling, recognizing the man's accent. She didn't know his name,
but his dialect, and the presence of the vines, told her his profession.
"You are one of the druids?" she asked.
"I
am Newander," the druid replied, bowing low, "friend of your
Cadderly."
Danica
accepted his words without question and spent a moment reorienting herself to
her surroundings. She was in her own room, she knew, the room she had lived in
for a year, but something seemed terribly out of place. It wasn't Newander, or
even the vines. Something in this room, in Danica's most secure of places,
burned on the edges of the young woman's consciousness, tortured her soul.
Danica's gaze settled on the fallen block of stone, stained darkly on one side.
The ache in her forehead told her that her dreams had been correct, that her
own lifeblood had made that stain.
"How
could I have been so foolish?" Danica groaned.
"You
were not foolish," Newander assured her. "There has been a curse about
this place, a curse that your Cadderly has set out to remove."
Again
Danica knew instinctively that the druid spoke truthfully. She envisioned her
mental struggle against the insinuating red mist, a battle that had been won
temporarily but was far from over. Even as she lay there, Danica knew that the
red mist continued its assault on her mind.
"Where
is he?" Danica asked, near panic.
"He
went below," Newander replied, seeing no need to hide the facts from the
bound woman. "He spoke of a smoking bottle, deep in the cellars."
"The
smoke," Danica echoed mysteriously. "Red mist. It is all about us,
Newander."
The
druid nodded. "That is what Cadderly claimed. It was he who opened the
bottle, and he that means to close it."
"Alone?"
"No,
no," Newander assured her. "The two dwarves went with him. They have
not been as affected by the curse as the rest."
"The
rest?" Danica gasped. Danica knew that her own resistance to such
mind-affecting spells was greater than the average person's and she suddenly
feared for the other priests. she had
been driven to slam her head into a block of stone, then what tragedies might
have befallen less disciplined priests?
"Aye,
the rest," Newander replied grimly. "The curse is general on the
library. Few, if any, have escaped it, your Cadderly excepted. Dwarves are
tougher than most against magic, and the brother cooks seemed in good
sorts."
Danica
could hardly digest what she was hearing. The last thing she could remember was
finding Cadderly unconscious under the casks in the wine cellar. Everything
after that seemed just a strange dream to her, fleeting images of irrational
moments. Now, in concentrating with all her willpower, she remembered Kierkan
Rufo's advances and her punishing him severely for them. Danica remembered even
more vividly the block of stone, the exploding flashes of pain, and her own
refusal to admit the futility of her attempt.
Danica
did not dare to let her imagination conjure images of the state of the library
if the druid's words were true, if this same curse was general throughout the
place. She focused her thoughts instead on a more personal level, on Cadderly
and his quest down in the dusty, dangerous cellars.
"We
must go and help him," she declared, renewing her struggles against the
stubborn vines.
"No,"
said Newander. "We are to stay here, by Cadderly's own bidding."
"No,"
Danica stated flatly, shaking her head. "Of course Cadderly would say
that, trying to protect me-and it seems I needed protecting, until a few
moments ago. Cadderly and the dwarves might need us, and I'll not lie here
under your vines while he walks into danger."
Newander
was about to question her on why she thought there might be danger in the
cellars, when he recalled Cadderly's own morbid descriptions of the haunted
place.
"Have
your plants let me go, Newander, I beg" Danica appealed to the druid.
"You can remain here if you choose, but I must go to Cadderly's side
quickly, before this cursing mist regains its hold on me!"
Her
last statement, that the curse might fall back over her, only reinforced
Newander's logical conclusion that she should be kept under tight control, that
her reprieve from the curse, if that was what this was, might be a temporary
thing. But the druid could not ignore the determination in the young woman's
voice. He had heard stories of the remarkable Danica from many sources since
his arrival at the library and he did not doubt that she would be a powerful
ally to Cadderly if she could remain clear-headed. Still, the druid could not
underestimate the curse's power-the evidence was too clear all about him- and
the choice to release her seemed a great risk.
"What
have you to gain by keeping me here?" Danica asked, as though she had read
the druid's thoughts. "A Cadderly is not in danger, then he will find and
defeat the curse before I... we, can get to him. But if he and the dwarves have
found danger, then they could surely use our help."
Newander
waved his hands and whistled shrilly to the vines. They jumped to his call,
releasing their hold on Danica and the bed, rolling back out the open window.
Danica
stretched her arms and legs for many moments before she could bring herself to
stand, and even then she got up quite unsteadily, needing Newander's support.
"Are
you so certain that you are fit for walking?" the druid asked. "You
suffered some serious wounds to the head."
Danica
pulled roughly from his grasp and staggered to the middle of the room. There
she began an exercise routine, falling more and more easily into the familiar
movements. Her arms waved and darted in perfect harmony, each guiding the other
to its next maneuver. Every now and again, one of her feet came whistling up in
front of her, arcing high over her head.
Newander
watched her tentatively at first, then smiled and nodded his agreement that the
young woman had fully regained control of her movements, movements that seemed
ever so graceful and appealing, almost animal-like, to the druid.
"We
should be going, then," Newander offered, taking up his oaken staff and
moving to the door.
Renewed
sounds from Histra's room greeted them as they entered the hall. Danica glanced
anxiously at Newander, then started for the priestess's door. Newander's hand
clasped her shoulder and stopped her.
"The
curse," the druid explained.
"But
we must go to help," Danica started to retort, but she stopped suddenly as
she recognized the connotations of those cries.
Danica's
blush became a deep red, and she giggled in spite of the seriousness of the
situation. Newander tried to hurry her down the corridor and she did not
resist. Indeed, it was Danica pulling the druid by the time they passed
Histra's closed door.
Their
first stop was Cadderly's room, and they entered just as Kierkan Rufo was
pulling himself free from the last of Ivan's stubborn bindings.
Danica's
eyes lit up at the sight. Vivid memories of Rufo prodding her and grabbing at
her assaulted her thoughts, and a wave of sheer hatred, augmented by the red
mist, nearly overwhelmed her.
"Where
is Cadderly?" Danica demanded through clenched teeth.
Newander
knew nothing of Rufo, of course, but the druid recognized immediately that
Danica's feelings for the angular man were not positive.
Rufo
twisted his wrist free and tore away from the bed. He averted his gaze,
obviously not wanting to face Danica, or anyone else at that moment. Thoroughly
wretched, the beaten man wanted only to crawl under his own bed in his own dark
room. He had the misfortune, though, or the poor judgment, to walk near Danica
on his way out of the room.
"Where
is Cadderly?" Danica insisted again, stepping in Rufo's way.
Rufo
sneered at her and swung a backhand that never got dose. Before Newander could
begin to intervene, Danica had caught Rufo's wrist and used its own momentum,
with a slight twist, to send the angular man lurching to the side. Newander
heard the dull thud, though Danica's next movement had been too subtle to
follow. The druid wasn't sure where Danica had hit the man, but from the
curious way Rufo squealed and hopped up onto his toes, Newander could make a guess.
"Danica!"
the druid cried, wrapping himself around Danica's arms and pulling her back
from the tiptoeing man. "Danica," he whispered in Danica's ear.
"It is the curse. Remember the curse? You must fight it, girl!"
Danica
relaxed immediately and let Rufo slip by. The stubborn man couldn't resist the
temptation to turn back as he passed and put one more sneer in Danica's face.
Danica's
foot caught him on the side of the head and sent him tumbling out into the
hall.
"I
meant to do that," Danica assured Newander, making no struggles against
his continuing hold, "curse or no curse!"
The
druid nodded resignedly; Rufo had asked for that one. He let Danica go as soon
as he heard Rufo scramble away down the corridor.
"He
is stubborn, that one," Newander remarked.
"Too
true," said Danica. "He must have come in on Cadderly and the
dwarves."
"Did
you notice the bruises on his face?" said the druid. "It would seem
that he did not fare too well in that fight."
Danica
agreed quietly, thinking it best not to tell Newander that she was the one who
had put most of those bruises on Rufo's face. "So Rufo did not slow
them," Danica reasoned. "They have made their way to the cellars, and
we must be quick to follow."
The
druid hesitated.
"What
is it?"
"I
am afraid for you," Newander admitted, "and of you.
How free are you of the mist? Less than I was
believing, by the look on your face when we came upon that one."
"I
admit that, for all my efforts, the mist remains," replied Danica,
"but your words brought me back under control, I assure you, even against
Kierkan Rufo. My argument with him goes beyond this curse. I'll not forget the
way he has stared at me, or what he tried to do to me." A suspicious look
came into Danica's brown eyes, and she cautiously backed away from Newander.
"Why is Newander, the druid, not affected by this thing? And what does
Cadderly possess that frees him from the influences of the red mist?"
"As
for myself, I know not," Newander replied immediately. "Your Cadderly
believes I am free because there are no ridden desires in my heart, and because
I came into the library after the curse had started. I knew that something was
amiss here as soon as I went to my friends-perhaps that warning has allowed me
to fend off the cursing effects."
Danica
didn't seem convinced. "I am a disciplined warrior," she replied,
"but the curse found its way into my thoughts easily enough, even just
now, though I understand the dangers of it."
Newander
shrugged, having no explanation. "That was your Cadderly's theory, not my
own," he reminded her.
"What
does Newander believe?"
Again
the druid merely shrugged.
"For
Cadderly," he said a moment later, "it was he who opened the bottle,
and that alone might have saved him. Often in magical curses, the bringer of
the curse does not feel its sting."
Danica
didn't really appreciate the value of anything the druid had said, but the
sincerity in Newander's voice was undeniable. She lowered her guard and walked
out beside the man.
The
kitchen still belonged to the gluttons. Several more had fallen in an
overstuffed stupor, but others continued to wander about, pillaging the
dwarves' well-organized cupboards.
Newander and Danica tried to keep their
distance as they made their way toward the cellar door, but one fat priest took
more than a passing interest in the beautiful young woman.
"Here's
a tasty bit still to be tried" he slobbered between several thunderous
belches. Rubbing his greasy fingers on his greasier robes, he started straight
for Danica.
He had
nearly reached her-and Danica thought she would have to clobber the man-when a
pudgy hand grabbed him on the shoulder and roughly spun him about.
"Hold!"
shouted Headmaster Avery. "What do you think you are about?"
The
priest eyed Avery with sincere confusion, as did Danica, standing behind him.
"Danica,"
Avery explained to the man. "Danica and Cadderly! You keep away from
her." Before the man could make any apologies, before Danica could try to
calm Avery, the pudgy headmaster swung across with his other arm, holding a
hefty leg of mutton, and cracked the offending priest on the side of the head.
The man dropped in a heap and did not move.
"But,
Headmaster ..." Danica began.
Avery
cut her off. "No need to thank me," he said. "I watch out for my
dear friend, Cadderly. And for his friends, too, of course. No need to thank
me!" He wandered off without waiting for any reply, gorging on his mutton
and searching for new stores to raid.
Danica
and Newander started for the fallen man, but the priest awoke with a start and
shook his head briskly. He wiped a hand across the mutton-wetted side of his
head, smelled his fingers curiously for a moment when he realized the wetness
was not his own blood, then began licking them wildly.
The two
companions' relief when they reached the heavy, iron-bound cellar door
dissipated as soon as they found the portal barred. Danica worked at the jam
for a few moments, trying to discover the source of the lock, while the druid
prepared a spell.
Newander
spoke a few words-they sounded elvish to Danica-and the door groaned, as if in
answer. Wood planks warped and loosened and the whole door rattled to Danica's
slightest touch.
When
the druid's spell was completed, Danica went at the door more forcefully. It no
longer fit neatly on any side, though the locking bar remained firmly in place
behind it.
Danica
spent a long moment in deep concentration, then lashed out with her open palm.
Her blow would have dropped any man, but the door was very old, of ancient oak,
and very thick, and the punch had little effect. This portal had been
constructed for defense in the earliest days of the library. If a goblin raid
ever overpowered the outside defenses, the priests could retreat to the
cellars. It had only happened twice in the history of the library, and both
times, the oaken door had stopped the intruders. Neither the flames of goblin
torches, nor the weight of their crude battering rams had broken through, and
now, Danica, for all her power and training, was simply overmatched.
"It
appears that Cadderly and the dwarves will have to get the task finished
without our help," Newander remarked grimly, though there was a hint of
relief in his voice.
Danica
was not so willing to surrender. "Outside," she ordered, starting
back across the kitchen. "There may be a window, or some other way
down."
Newander
did not think her hopes likely, but Danica hadn't asked for, or even waited to
hear, his opinion. Reluctantly, the druid shrugged and ran to catch up with
her.
They
split up just outside the double doors, Danica searching along the base of the
wall to the south, Newander going north. Danica had gone only a few steps when
she was joined by a welcomed friend.
"Percival,"
the woman said happily, glad for the distraction as the white squirrel peered
over the edge of the roof right above her, chattering excitedly. Danica knew
immediately that something was bothering the squirrel, but while she could
sometimes figure out the connotations of a few of Percival's basic cries, she
could not begin to follow his wild stream of chatter.
"Oh,
Percival!" she scolded loudly, interrupting the squirrel's banter. "I
do not understand."
"Surely
I do," said Newander, coming up quickly behind Danica. To the squirrel, he
said, "Do continue," and he uttered a series of squeaks and clicks.
Percival
began again at once, at such a pace that Newander was hard pressed to keep up.
"We
may have found our way in," the druid announced to Danica when Percival
had finished. "That is, if we can trust the beast."
Danica
studied the squirrel for a brief moment, then vouched for him.
The
first place Percival led them was the old work shed to the side of the library.
As soon as they entered, they understood the squirrel's noisy introduction to
the place, for the chains still hung from the ceiling near to the back wall and
droplets of blood had spattered the floor beneath them.
"Mullivy?"
Danica asked to no one in particular. Her question set Percival off on a new
stream of gossip. Danica waited patiently for the squirrel to finish, then
turned to Newander for a translation.
"This
Mullivy," the druid asked, looking about with even more concern,
"might he be the caretaker?"
Danica
nodded. "He has been groundskeeper of the library for decades."
"Percival
claims he was brought here by another man," the druid explained,
"then they both went off to the hole."
"The
hole?"
"Tunnel,
he means, as best as I can figure," explained Newander. "All this
happened several days ago, perhaps. Percival's grasp of time is weak. Still, it
is remarkable that the squirrel can recall the incident at all. They are not
known for long memories, you know."
Percival
hopped down from the shelf and raced out the door as though he had taken
exception to the druid's last remark. Danica and Newander rushed to follow,
Danica pausing to collect a couple of torches that Mullivy had conveniently
stocked in the work shed.
It
seemed as if Percival was almost playing a deliberate game with them as they
tried to follow his darting movements along the broken ground and rough
underbrush south of the library. At last, after many wrong turns, they caught
up to the squirrel along a ridge. Below them, under an overhang thick with
brush, they saw the ancient tunnel, heading into the mountain in the general
direction of the library.
"This
might not get us anywhere near the cellars we are seeking," Newander
offered.
"How
long will it take us to get through the door in the kitchen?" Danica
asked, mostly to remind the druid of their lack of options. To accentuate her
point, she led Newander's gaze to the west, where the sun was already
disappearing behind the high peaks of the Snowflakes.
Newander
took a torch from her, uttered a few words, and produced a flame in his open
palm. The fire did not burn the druid, but it lit the torch, and then lit
Danica's torch, easily enough before Newander extinguished it.
They
walked in side by side, taking note that there were indeed prints in the dust
on the tunnel floor-boot prints, possibly, though most were scraped away in a
manner that neither of them could explain.
Neither
of them realized that zombies dragged their feet when they walked.
General
Druzil
Ivan
wiped a line of blood from his brother's neck. "Druid?" Ivan asked,
and there now remained little sarcasm in his tone. Pikel's wild fighting
obviously had impressed Ivan, and the dwarf had no way of knowing how much more
there was to being a druid than barking animal noises during a fight.
"Maybe that'd not be so bad." Pikel nodded gratefully, his smile wide
under his low-hanging helmet.
"Where
do we go from here?" Ivan asked Cadderly, who was leaning quietly against
the wall. Cadderly opened his eyes. This passage was new to him and the fight
had agitated him. Even concentrating on the dripping water did little to help
him get his bearings. "We went mostly west," he offered tentatively.
"Ws have to come back a-round ..."
"North,"
Ivan corrected, then he whispered to Pikel, "Never met a human who could
tell his way underground," which brought a chuckle from both dwarves.
"Whatever the direction," Cadderly went on, "we have to get back
to the original area. We were close to our goal before the attack. I am certain
of that."
"The
best way back is the way we ran," reasoned Ivan.
"Uh
oh," muttered Pikel, peeking around the comer to the passage behind them.
Cadderly
and Ivan didn't miss the dwarfs point, and they understood even more clearly a
second later, when the now familiar scraping-scuffing sound of approaching bony
feet came from beyond the bend.
Ivan
and Pikel clasped their weapons and nodded eagerly- too eagerly, by the young
scholar's estimation. Cadderly moved quickly to quench the battle-fires burning
in their eyes. "We go the other way," he ordered. "This passage
must have another exit, just like all the others, and no doubt it connects to
tunnels that will allow us to get behind our pursuers."
"Ye
fearing a fight?" balked Ivan, narrowing his eyes with contempt.
The
dwarfs suddenly gruff tone alarmed Cadderly. "The bottle," he
reminded Ivan. "That is our first and most important target. Once we close
it, you can go back after all the skeletons you desire." The answer seemed
to appease Ivan, but Cadderly was hoping that once they had closed the bottle
and defeated whoever or whatever was behind this whole curse, no further fighting
would be necessary.
The
corridor went on for a long way with no side passages, and no alcoves, though
some areas were lined by rotted crates.
When
they at last did see a turn up ahead, a bend that went back the same way as the
one they had left behind, they were greeted once again by the
scraping-scuffling sound. All three glanced at each other with concern; Ivan's
glare at Cadderly was not complimentary.
"We
left the others far behind," the dwarf reasoned. "This must be a new
group. Now they're on both sides! I told ye we should've fought them when we
could!"
"Turn
back," Cadderly said, thinking that perhaps the dwarfs reasoning was not
correct.
Ivan
didn't seem to like the idea. "There are more behind us," he huffed.
"Ye want to be fighting both groups at once?"
Cadderly
wanted to argue that perhaps there were not skeletons behind them, that perhaps
this unseen group in front of them was the same as those they had left behind.
He saw clearly that he wouldn't convince the grumbling dwarves, so he didn't waste
the time in trying. "We have wood," he said. "Let us at least
build some defenses."
The
brothers had no problem with that suggestion, and they quickly followed
Cadderly a short way back down the passage, to the last grouping of rotted
crates. Ivan and Pikel conferred in a private huddle for a moment, then swept
into action. Several of the boxes, weakened by the decades, fell apart at the
touch, but soon the dwarves had two shoulder-high-to-a-man and fairiy solid
lines running out from one wall, forming a corridor too narrow for more than
one or two skeletons to come through at a time.
"Just
get yerself behind me and me brother," Ivan instructed Cadderly.
"We're better for smashing walking bones than that toy ye carry!"
By
then, the scuffling was quite loud in front of them and Cadderly could detect
some movement just at the end of his narrow light beam. The skeletons did not
advance any farther, though.
"Have
they lost the trail?" Cadderly whispered.
Ivan
shook his head. "They know we're here," he insisted.
"Why
do they hold back?"
"Uh
oh," moaned Pikel.
"Ye're
right," Ivan said to his brother. He looked up at Cadderly. "Ye
should've left the fighting to us," he said. "Be keeping that thought
in yer head in the future. Now they're waiting for the other group, the one we
shouldn't have left behind us, to catch up."
Cadderly
rocked back on his heels. Skeletons were not thinking creatures. If Ivan's
appraisal was correct, then some one, or something, else was in the area,
directing the attack.
Shuffling
noises proved the dwarves' guess right only a few moments later and Cadderly
nodded grimly. Perhaps he should have left the fighting decisions to his more
seasoned companions. He took up his appointed position behind the dwarven
brothers, not sounding his concerns that the undead seemed to have some
organization.
The
skeletons came at them in a rush, a score from one side and at least that many
from the other, and when they found the single opening to get at their living
enemies, they banged against each other trying to get in.
A
single chop from Ivan's axe dispatched the first one that made its way down.
Several more followed in a tight group, and Ivan backed away and nodded to his
brother. Pikel lowered his dub like a battering ram and started pumping his
legs frantically, building momentum. Cadderly grabbed the dwarf's shoulder,
hoping to keep their defensive posture intact, and it was Ivan, not Pikel, who
knocked his hand away.
"Tactics,
boy, tactics," Ivan grumbled, shaking his head incredulously. "I told
ye to leave the fighting to us."
Cadderly
nodded again and pulled back.
Pikel
sprang away, battering into the advancing skeletons like some animated ballista
missile. With the general jumble of bones, it was hard to determine how many
skeletons the dwarf actually had destroyed. The important factor was that many
more still remained. Pikel wheeled about quickly and came rushing back, one
skeleton right behind him.
"Down!"
Ivan yelled and Pikel dove to the ground just as Ivan's great axe swiped about,
bashing Pikel's pursuer into little pieces.
Cadderly
vowed then to let the dwarves handle any future battle arrangements, humbling
himself to the fact that the dwarves understood tactics far better than he ever
could.
Another
small group of skeletons came on, and Ivan and Pikel used alternating attack
routines, each playing off his brother's feints and charges, to easily defeat
them. Cadderly rested back against the wall in sincere admiration, believing
that the brothers could keep this up for a long, long time.
Then,
suddenly, the skeletons stopped advancing. They milled about by the entrance to
the crate run for a moment, then systematically began dismantling the piles.
"When
did those things learn to think?" asked a disbelieving Ivan.
"Something
is guiding them," Cadderly replied, shifting his light beam all about the
passage in search of the undead leader.
* * * *
*
No
light could reveal Druzil's invisibility. The imp watched impatiently and with
growing concern. Counting the skeletons back in the earlier passages, these
three adventurers had destroyed more than half the undead force.
Druzil
was not normally a gambling creature, not when his own safety was concerned,
but this was not a normal situation. If these three were not stopped, they
eventually would get into the altar room. Who could guess what kind of damage
the two wild dwarves might cause in there?
Yet, it
was something about the human that bothered Druzil most of all. His eyes, the
imp thought, and the careful and calculating way he swept his light beam,
reminded Druzil pointedly of another powerful and dangerous human. Druzil had
heard of dwarven resistance to all magic, even potent ones such as the chaos
curse, so he could understand how the two had found their way down, but this
human seemed even more clear-headed, more focused, than his companions.
There
could be only one answer: this one had been Barjin's catalyst in opening the
bottle. Barjin had assured Druzil that he had put spells on the catalyst that
would keep the man from remembering anything and from posing any threat. Had
Barjin, perhaps, underestimated his foe? That possibility only increased
Druzil's respect for Cadderly.
Yes,
the imp decided, this human was the true threat. Druzil rubbed his hands
together eagerly and stretched his wings. It was time to end that threat.
* * * *
*
"We've
got to charge them before they rip it all down!" Ivan declared, but before
he and Pikel could move, there came a sudden rush of wind.
"Oo!"
Pikel yelled, instinctively recognizing the sound as an attack. He grabbed the
front of Cadderly's tunic and pulled him to the ground. A split second later,
Pikel yelped out in pain and grabbed at his neck.
The
attacker became visible as it struck, and Cadderly, though he didn't recognize
the creature precisely, knew it was a denizen of the lower planes, some sort of
imp. The bat-winged thing flew off, its barbed tail trailing behind, dripping
Pikel's blood.
"Me
brother!" shouted Ivan, but, though Pikel seemed a bit dazed, he warded off
Ivan's attempts to see to his wound.
"That
was an imp," Cadderly explained, keeping the light beam in the direction
the creature had flown. "Its sting is-" he stopped when he looked at
the concerned brothers "-poisoned," Cadderly said softly.
As if
on cue, Pikel began to tremble violently and both Cadderly and Ivan thought he
surely would go down. Dwarves, though, were a tough lot, and Pikel was a tough
dwarf. A moment later, he growled loudly and threw off the trembling in a
sudden violent jolt. Straightening, he smiled at his brother, hoisted his tree
trunk, and nodded toward the skeletal host, still at work taking apart the
crate defenses.
"So
it was poisoned," Ivan explained, looking pointedly at Cadderly.
"Might've killed a man."
"My
thanks," Cadderly said to Pikel, and he would have gone on, except that
other things demanded his attention at the moment. The imp had targeted him, he
realized, and it most probably would be back.
Cadderly released a latch on Percival walking
stick and tilted the ram's head backward on cleverly hidden hinges. He then
popped off the stick's bottom cap, leaving him a hollow tube.
"Eh?"
asked Pikel, wording Ivan's thoughts exactly.
Cadderly
only smiled in reply and continued his preparations. He unscrewed his feathered
ring, the one filled with drow-style sleep poison, and showed the dwarves the
tiny feather, its other end a cat's claw dripping with the potent black
solution. Cadderly winked and fitted the dart into the end of his walking
stick, then grabbed a nearby plank and waited.
The
fluttering sound of bat wings returned a moment later and both dwarves hoisted
their weapons to defend. Cadderly had anticipated that the imp would be
invisible again. He determined the general direction of the attack and, when
the flapping grew near, tossed out the plank.
The
agile imp dodged the heavy board, just nicking it with one wing tip as he
passed. While the hit hadn't done any real damage, it did cost Druzil dearly.
With
his walking stick blow-gun held to pursed lips, Cadderly registered the sound
of the nick, aimed, and puffed. A slight thud told him that the dart had struck
home.
"Oo
oi!" Pikel squealed in glee as the invisible imp, stuck with a quite
visible dart, fluttered overhead. "Oo oi!"
* * * *
*
Druzil
wasn't sure if he or the corridor was spinning. Whichever it was, he knew,
somewhere in the back of Percival dreamy thoughts, that it was not a good
thing. Normally poisons would not affect an imp, especially on a plane of
existence other than its own. But the cat's-claw dart that had struck Druzil
was coated in drow sleep poison, which was among the most potent concoctions in
all the world.
"My
skeletons," the imp whispered, remembering his command, and feeling that
he was somehow needed in some distant battle. Druzil couldn't sort it out; all
he wanted to do was sleep.
He
should have landed first.
He bit
the wall before he realized that he was flying, and fell with a heavy groan.
The concussion shook a bit of the slumber from him and he remembered suddenly that
the battle was not so distant and that he was indeed needed ... but the thought of sleep felt so much
better.
Druzil
kept enough of his wits about him to get out of the open corridor. His bones
crackled in transformation, leathery skin ripped and reshaped. Soon he was a
large centipede, invisible still, and he slipped in through a crack in the wall
and let the slumber overtake him.
* * * *
*
When
Druzil fell, so did any semblance of organization in the skeleton forces. Now
the imp's intrusions into the undead creatures' predetermined commands worked
against the skeletons, for they were not thinking creatures and their original
course had been seriously interrupted.
Some
skeletons wandered aimlessly away, others hung their bony arms down by their
sides and stood perfectly still, while others continued their methodical
dismantling of the crate barricades, though they no longer followed any purpose
in then-actions. Only one group remained hostile, rushing down the narrow
channel at Cadderly and the dwarves, their arms reaching out eagerly.
Ivan
and Pikel met them squarely with powerful chops and straightforward thrusts.
Even Cadderly managed to get in a few hits. He stood behind Pikel, knowing that
Ivan's antlers probably would foul his spindle-disks. Pikel was only about four
feet tall, with another few inches added for the pot helmet, and Cadderly,
standing at six feet, snapped off shots whenever the dwarfs clubbing maneuvers
allowed him an opening.
At
Cadderly's suggestion, they worked their way down the channel, leaving piles of
bones in their wake. The imp had been controlling the skeletons, Cadderly
realized, and with the imp down-Cadderly had heard it hit the wall-Cadderly
suspected that the monsters would take little initiative in the fight.
With
the one attacking group dispatched, Ivan and Pikel moved cautiously toward
those breaking down the barricades. The skeletons offered no resistance, didn't
even look up from their work, as the dwarves smashed them into bits. Similarly,
those skeletons still remaining in the area, those standing still and showing
no signs that they had even been animated, fell easy prey to the dwarves.
"That's
the lot," Ivan announced, blasting the skull from the last standing
skeleton, "except for those that are running away. We can catch
them!"
"Let
them wander," Cadderly offered.
Ivan
glared at him.
"We
have more important business," Cadderly replied, his words more a
suggestion than a command. He moved slowly toward where the imp had crashed,
the dwarves at his side, but found no sign of Druzil, not even the feathered
dart.
"Which
way then?" asked an impatient Ivan.
"Back
the way we came," Cadderly replied. "I will have an easier time
finding the altar room if we return to tunnels I know. Now that the skeletons
have been defeated ..."
"Oo!"
chirped Pikel suddenly. Cadderly and Ivan looked around anxiously, thinking
another attack imminent.
"What
do ye see?" asked Ivan, staring into the empty distance.
"Oo!"
Pikel said again, and when his brother and Cadderly looked back at him, they
understood that he was responding to no outside threat.
He was
trembling again.
"Oo!"
Pikel clutched at his chest and went into a series of short hops.
"Poison!"
Cadderly cried to Ivan. "The excitement of battle allowed him to fight it
off, but only temporarily!"
"Oo!"
Pikel agreed, scratching furiously at his breastplate, as if he were trying to
get at his heart.
Ivan
ran over and grabbed him to hold him steady. "Ye're a dwarf!" he
yowled. "Ye don't go falling to poison!"
Cadderly
knew better. In the same book he had found the drow recipe, he had read. of
many of the Realms' known poisons. Near the top of the potency list, beside the
deadly sting of a wyvern's tail and the bite of the dreaded two-headed
amphisbaena snake, were listed several poisons of lower plane denizens, among
them one from the tail stingers of imps. Dwarves were as resistant to poison as
to magic, but if the imp had hit Pikel solidly
...
"Oo!"
Pikel cried one final time. His trembling mocked Ivan's desperate efforts to
hold him steady and, with a sudden burst of power, he threw his brother aside
and stood staring blankly ahead for just a moment. Then he fell, and both Ivan
and Cadderly knew he was dead before they ever got to him.
Ghouls
They
had heard the call of the necromancer's stone; they had sensed the dead walking
and knew that a crypt had been disturbed. They were hungry now-they were always
hungry-and the promises of carrion, ancient and new, brought them running,
hunched low on legs that once had been human. Long tongues wagged between
pointy teeth, dripping lines of dirty saliva along chins and necks.
They
didn't care; they were hungry.
They
came up along the road, darting in and out of the deepening afternoon shadows
as they made their way toward the large building. One man, a tall human in long
gray robes, was up there milling about the great doors. The lead ghoul bent low
over its bowed legs and charged, arms hanging low, knuckles dragging on the
ground, and fingers twitching excitedly.
Long
and filthy fingernails, as sharp and tough as a wild animal's claws, caught the
unsuspecting priest on the shoulder. His agonized cries only increased the
frenzy. He tried to fight back, but the chill of the diseased, ghoulish touch
deadened his limbs. His features locked in a horror-filled, paralyzed
contortion, and the pack fell over him, tearing him apart in seconds.
One by
one, the ghouls drifted away from the devoured corpse, toward the great doors
and the promise of more food. But each of them veered away, shielding its eyes
with raised arms as it approached, for the doors were blessed and heavily
warded against intrusions by undead creatures. The ghouls wandered about for a
moment, hungry and frustrated, then one of them heard the call of the stone
again, to the south of the structure, and the pack swept off to find it.
* * * *
*
It was
a damp place, with pools of muddy water dotting the earthen floor and mossy
vines, covered by crawling things, hanging from the evenly spaced support beams.
Danica moved cautiously, the torch far out in front of her, and she kept as far
from the sinister-looking moss as possible.
Newander
was less concerned with the hanging strands, for they were a natural growth, as
were the insects crawling over them, and so were within the druid's realm of
understanding. Still, though, Newander seemed even more anxious than Danica. He
stopped several times and looked around, as if he was trying to locate
something.
Finally
his fears infected Danica. She moved beside him, studying him closely in the
torchlight.
"What
do you seek?" she asked bluntly.
"I
sense a wrongness," Newander replied cryptically.
"An
evil?"
"Your
Cadderly told me of undead monsters walking the crypts," Newander
explained. "Now I know he was telling me true. They are the greatest
perversion of nature's order, a wrong upon the earth itself."
Danica
could understand why a druid, whose entire life was based on natural order,
might be sensitive to the presence of undead monsters, but she was amazed that
Newander could actually sense they were nearby. "The walking dead have
passed this place?" she asked, fully trusting that 1ms answer would be
correct.
Newander
shrugged and looked around nervously again. "They are close about,"
he replied, "too close."
"How
can you know?" Danica pressed.
Newander
looked at her curiously, confusedly. "I... I cannot," he stammered,
"and yet I do."
"The
curse?" Danica wondered aloud.
"My
senses do not lie to me," Newander insisted. He spun about suddenly, back
toward the tunnel entrance, as if he had heard something.
Just an
instant later, Danica jumped in surprise as a screech sounded from the tunnel
entrance, now no more than a gray blur far behind. She recognized the cry as
Percival's, but that fact did not calm her, for even then the hunched forms
appeared at the entrance, the sound of their hungry slobbers carrying all the
way down to the woman and the druid.
"Run,
Danica!" Newander cried and turned to go.
Danica
did not move, unafraid of any enemy. She saw eight man-sized shapes distinctly,
though she had no idea if they were priests from the library or monsters.
Either way, Danica saw no advantage in stumbling down the tunnel, perhaps
running into a waiting enemy and having to fight both foes at the same time. Also,
Danica could not ignore Percival. She would fight for the white squirrel as
surely as she would fight for any friend.
"They
are undead," the druid tried to explain and, even as he spoke the words,
the rotted ghoul stench filled their nostrils. The odor told Newander much
about their enemy, and his desire to flee only increased. It was too late,
though. "Do not let them scratch you," Newander advised. "Their
touch will freeze the marrow of your bones."
Danica
crouched low, feeling the balance of the torch and tuning all her senses to her
surroundings. Above her, Percival skittered along a wooden beam; behind her,
Newander had begun a low chant, a spell preparation; and before her, the pack
came on, hissing and sputtering, but slower now, out of respect for the blazing
torch.
The
pack came to within a dozen running strides of Danica and halted. Danica saw
their yellow, sickly eyes, but unlike those of a corpse, these shone with
inner, hungry fires. She heard their breathless gasps and saw their long and
pointy tongues, flicking like a reptile's might. Danica crouched even lower,
sensing their mounting excitement.
As a
group, they charged, but it was Newander who struck first. As the ghouls passed
under a crossbeam, the moss came to life. Like the vines that had held Danica
to her bed, the moss strands grabbed at the passing ghouls. Three of the
creatures were fully entangled; two others scrambled and spat in horrifying
rage, their ankles hooked, but three came right through.
The
lead ghoul bore down on Danica, who stood poised and unafraid. She held her
unthreatening posture until the very last moment, luring the ghoul right in on
her, so close that even Newander let out an alarmed cry.
Danica
was in perfect control of the situation. Her torch shot out suddenly, its fiery
end slamming the ghoul right in the eye. The creature recoiled and let out a
shriek that sent tingling shivers along Danica's spine.
She
popped the ghoul in the other eye for good measure, but the move put her torch
out of line for a continuing defense. A second foe appeared beside the first,
its tongue hanging low and its wretched hands reaching for Danica.
Danica
moved to punch it but remembered Newander's warning and knew that her own arm's
reach could not match the taller ghoul's. Danica possessed other weapons. She
threw her head backward suddenly, so far that it seemed she would tumble to the
ground. Her continued balance caught the still-advancing ghoul by surprise and
brought an astounded gasp from Newander behind her, for Danica did not fall.
She pivoted her body on one leg, her other leg shooting up before her and her
foot catching the charging ghoul right under the chin. The monster's jaw
smacked shut, its severed tongue dropped to the floor, and it stopped abruptly,
hideous red-green blood and mucus pouring from its mouth.
Danica
wasn't nearly finished with it. She dropped her torch and leaped straight up,
catching the crossbeam support, and snap-kicked one foot into the ghoul's face,
sending gore flying. Again and again Danica's kicks pounded it.
The
third advancing ghoul had met equal punishment. Newander held his open palm out
before him and uttered a few words to produce another ball of magical flame,
similar to the one he had used to fight the torch back at the tunnel entrance.
As the ghoul came hobbling in, Newander launched the fiery missile. It hit the
advancing monster squarely in the chest and suddenly the ghoul was more
concerned with patting out the flames than attacking the druid. It had nearly
put out the first fire when another ball came in, this one taking it in the
shoulder. Then came the third missile, bursting into a shower of sparks as it
hit the ghoul in the face.
Danica
held her position on the crossbeam and kicked one final time. She knew that she
had snapped the ghoul's neck, but the doomed creature managed to get a claw on
the side of her leg. As it fell, its dirty nail dug a deep in the down Danica's
calf. Danica looked upon the wound in horror, feeling the paralyzing touch
taking hold of her. "No!" she growled, and she used all her years of
training, all her mental discipline, to fight back, to force the chill from her
bones.
She
dropped from the beam and scooped up the torch, glad to learn that her leg
could still support her. Her anger controlled her now; part of Danica's
discipline involved the knowledge of when to let go, of when to let sheer anger
guide her actions. The ghoul with the burned eyes spun about wildly, slashing
blindly with its claws in its search for something to hit. Its mouth opened
impossibly wide in a hungry, vicious scream.
Danica
grasped the torch in both hands and rammed it with an overhead chop down the
ghoul's throat. The creature thrashed wildly, scoring several hits on Danica's
arms, but the furious woman did not relent. She drove the torch deeper down the
ghoul's gullet, twisting and grinding until the ghoul stopped thrashing.
Hardly
slowing, Danica tightened one hand and spun about, catching the ghoul battling
Newander's fires with a left hook. The blow lifted the monster from its feet
and sent it crashing into the tunnel wall. Newander came on it in an instant,
pounding with Percival oaken staff.
The
fight was far from over. Five ghouls remained, though three were still
helplessly entangled by the moss strands. The other two had worked their way
free and charged, paying no concern to their dead companions.
Danica
dropped into a low crouch, pulled her daggers from their boot sheaths, and
struck before the monsters ever got close. To the lead ghoul, the coming dagger
probably seemed no more than a sliver, flickering as it spun in the dim
torchlight. Then the creature got the point, as the dagger buried itself to the
hilt in its eye. The ghoul shrieked and teetered to the side, clutching its
face. Danica's second shot followed with equal precision, thudding into the
creature's chest, again burying to the hilt, and the ghoul tumbled, writhing in
the throes of death.
The
second charging ghoul, not a fortunate creature, now had a clear path at
Danica. The monk waited again until the very last moment, then sprang to grab
the beam and her deadly foot flashed out. The powerful kick caught the ghoul on
the forehead, stopping it cold and snapping its head backward. As the head came
back, Danica's foot met it again, then a third and a fourth time.
Danica
dropped from the beam, letting the momentum of her fall take her down into a
low squat. Like a coiled spring, she came back up, spinning as she rose and
letting one foot fly out behind her. The circle-kick maneuver caught the
stunned and battered ghoul on the side of the jaw and snapped its head to the
side so brutally that the ghoul was sent into an airborne somersault. It landed
in a kneeling position, weirdly contorted, with its legs straight out to either
side, its lifeless body hunched heavily and its head lolling about, looking
over one shoulder.
Danica's
rage was not appeased. She charged down the passage, issuing a single-toned
scream all the way. She put her right hand in a partial fist, extending her
index and little fingers rigidly. The closest moss-wrapped ghoul, not Danica's
target, managed to free one arm to lash at the woman. Danica easily dove under
the awkward attack, went into a roll right past the attacker, and came up a few
feet in front of the next ghoul without breaking her momentum in the least. She
leaped into the air and struck viciously as she descended. Eagle Talon, this
attack was named, according to the scrolls of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn, and
Danica worked it to perfection as her extending fingers drove right through the
ghoul's eyes, exploding into its rotted brain. It took Danica nearly a minute
to extract her hand from the creature's shattered head, but it didn't matter,
she knew. This ghoul offered no further threat.
Newander,
finished with his ghoul, started toward the young woman. He stopped, though,
seeing that Danica had things well under control, and went instead to retrieve
the low-burning torch.
Finally
free, Danica went back at the ghoul that had swung at her. Her fist thudded
grotesquely against the rotted flesh of the creature's chest; Danica knew that
its ribs had collapsed under the blow, but the ghoul, nearly free before the
attack, fell clear of the moss with the weight of the punch. It came up
screaming horribly, wailing away like a thing gone insane.
Danica
matched its intensity, hitting it three times for each hit she suffered. Again
she felt the paralyzing chill of a ghoul's touch and again she growled it away.
Still, she could not ignore the lines of blood on her arms, and her pain and
weariness were mounting. She feigned another straightforward punch, then
dropped into a squat under the ghoul's lurching swings. Her foot flashed
straight out, catching the ghoul inside its knee and sending it face-first to
the ground. In an instant, Danica was back up. She clutched her hands together
in a double fist, reached back over her head and dropped to her knees, using
the momentum of her fall to add to the power of her chop. She caught the rising
ghoul on the back of the head, slamming it back to the ground. The creature
bounced under the terrific impact and then lay very still.
Danica
didn't wait to see if it would move again. She grabbed a handful of its
scraggly hair, reached under to cup its chin in her other hand, and twisted its
head so violently that before the crackling of neck bones had finished, the
ghoul's dead eyes were staring straight up over its back.
Danica
came up with an enraged scream and advanced steadily on the one remaining
ghoul. The moss had lifted this one clear of the ground and it hung there
still, barely struggling against the impossible bonds. Danica punched it on the
side of the head, sending it into a spin. As the face came around in a full
circle, Danica, too, spun a circuit and circle-kicked, reversing the creature's
spin. And so it went, punch, kick, around one way and then the other.
"It
is dead," Newander started to say, but he didn't bother to press the
point, understanding that Danica needed to work through her rage. Still she
kicked and punched, and still the limply hanging ghoul spun.
Finally,
the exhausted monk dropped to her knees before the latest kill and put her head
in her blood-soaked hands.
* * * *
*
"Druzil?"
Barjin didn't know why he had spoken the word aloud; perhaps he had thought
that the sound would help him reestablish the suddenly broken telepathic link
with his imp familiar. "Druzil?"
There
was no reply, no hint that the imp kept any link at all opened to the cleric.
Barjin waited a moment longer, still trying to send his thoughts along the
outer passageways, still hoping that Druzil would answer.
Soon, the priest had to admit that his outer
eyes had somehow been dosed. Perhaps Druzil had been slain, or perhaps an enemy
priest had banished the imp back to his own plane. With that uncomfortable
thought in mind, Barjin moved to his low-burning brazier. He spoke a few
command words, ordering the flames higher and trying to reopen his mysteriously
unproductive interplanar gate. He called to midges and manes and lesser
denizens; he called to Druzil, hoping that if the imp had been banished, he
might bring him back. But the flames crackled unimpeded by any otherworldly
presence. Barjin did not know, of course, of the magical powder Druzil had
sprinkled to close the gate.
The
priest continued his calling for a short while, then realized the futility of
it and realized, too, that if Druzil had indeed been defeated, he might have
some serious problems brewing. Another thought came to him then, the image of
the imp returning to the altar room at the head of the skeletal force with
ideas of overthrowing the priest's leadership. Imps had never been known for
their undying loyalty.
In
either case, Barjin needed to strengthen his own position. He moved to Mullivy
first and spent a long moment considering how he might further strengthen the
zombie. He already had given Mullivy a patchwork armor plating and had
magically increased the zombie's strength, but now he had something more
devious in mind. He took out a tiny vial and poured a drop of mercury over
Mullivy, uttering an arcane chant. The spell completed, Barjin retrieved
several flasks of volatile oil and soaked Mullivy's clothes.
Barjin
turned to his most powerful ally, Khalif, the mummy. There was little the
priest could do to enhance the already monstrous creation, so he issued a new
set of unambiguous commands to it and set it in a more strategic position
outside the altar room.
All
that remained for Barjin was his personal preparations. He donned Percival
clerical vestments, enchanted doth as armored as a knight's suit of mail, and
uttered a prayer to enhance this protection even more. He took up the Screaming
Maiden, his devilish woman-headed mace, and rechecked the wards at the room's
single door. Let his enemies come; whether it was a traitor imp or a host of
priests from above, Barjin was confident that the attackers soon would wish
they had remained in the outer passages.
* * * *
*
Newander
moved to comfort Danica, but Percival got there first, dropping from a
crossbeam to the woman's shoulder. Danica's smile returned when she looked upon
the white squirrel, a reminder of better times, to be sure.
"They
sense the raising of the dead" Newander explained, indicating the ghouls.
"The meat of their table is the meat of a corpse."
Danica
shot him an incredulous look.
"Even
if they must create the corpse on their own," Newander replied. "But
it is the raising of the dead that brings them." Newander seemed to doubt
his own words, but he knew nothing of the necromancer's stone and had no other
explanation. "Ghouls will flock to undead from anywhere near, though where
these wretches have come from, I cannot guess."
Danica
struggled unsteadily to her feet. "It does not matter where they came
from," she said. "Only that they are dead- and will stay dead this
time. Let us go on. Cadderly and the dwarves might have met troubles farther
in."
Newander
grabbed her arm and held her back. "You cannot go," he insisted.
Danica
glared at him.
"My
spells are nearly exhausted," the druid explained, "but I have some
salves that might help your wounds and a curative spell that can defeat any
poison you might have suffered."
"We
have no time," Danica argued, pulling free. "Save that poison cure.
My wounds are not so serious, but we might need that before this is
ended."
"Only a minute for treating your wounds
then," Newander argued back, conceding the point concerning the spell but
adamant that Danica's scratches at least should be cleaned. He took out a small
pouch. "You might be needing me, Lady Danica, but I'll not go in with you
if you do not let me tend to your wounds."
Danica
wanted no delays, but she didn't doubt the stubborn druid's resolve. She
kneeled before Newander and held her torn forearms out to him, and, despite her
own stubbornness, she had to admit that the gashes felt much better the instant
the druid applied his salves.
They
set off again, Newander bearing the torch and his staff, Danica holding her
daggers, stained darkly with ghoul gore, and the newest member of the party,
Percival, wrapped nervously about Danica's neck and shoulders.
Oh,
Brother, Me Brother
"Me
brother!" Ivan wailed, falling over Pikel's prostrate form. "Oh, me
brother!" The dwarf sniffled and wept openly, cradling Pikel's head in his
hands.
Cadderly
had no words to comfort Ivan. Indeed, the young scholar was nearly as overcome
as the dwarf. Pikel had been a dear friend, always ready to listen to
Cadderly's latest wild idea, and always adding an emphatic "Oo oi!"
just to make Cadderly feel good.
Cadderly
had never known the pangs of a friend's death. His mother had died when he was
very young, but he didn't remember that. He saw the priests of Ilmater and the
dead gluttons in the kitchen, but they were only faces to him, distant and
unknown. Now, looking at dear Pikel, he didn't know how he should feel. didn't
know what he could do. It seemed a macabre game, and for the very first time in
his life, Cadderly understood that some things were beyond his power to control
or change, that all his rationale, his intelligence, in the final estimation
seemed just a minor thing.
"Ye should've been a druid," Ivan
said quietly. "Ye always were better under the sky than the stone."
Ivan let out a great cry and buried his head in Pikel's chest, his shoulders
shuddering uncontrollably.
Cadderly
could understand the dwarfs pain, but he was shocked nonetheless that Ivan was
so openly emotional. The priest wondered if something was wrong with him for
not falling over Pikel as Ivan had done, or if Ivan's love for his brother was
so much greater than his own feelings for the dwarf. Cadderly kept his wits
about him; no matter how agonizing Pikel's death was, if they did not move on
and close the bottle, many others would share a similar fate.
"We
must go," Cadderly said softly to Ivan.
"Shut
yer mouth!" Ivan roared, on the verge of an explosion, never taking his
gaze from his brother.
The
response caught Cadderly by surprise, but again he did not understand the
nature of grief, did not know if it was Ivan who was acting out of sorts or if
he was. When the dwarf finally did look back at him, tears streaked his
contorted face and Cadderly feared that he knew what was going on.
"The
curse," he muttered breathlessly. As far as he could tell, this red mist
worked to exaggerate one's emotions. Apparently the curse had found a hold in
Ivan's sincere grief, a chink in the tough dwarfs magic-resistant constitution.
Cadderly
feared that it was taking hold of Ivan. The dwarfs blubbering increased with
each passing moment; he could hardly draw breath, so violent was his weeping.
"Ivan,"
he said quietly, moving over to put a hand on the dwarfs shoulder. "We can
do no more for Pikel. Come away now. We have other business to attend."
Ivan
snapped an angry glare on Cadderly and smacked his hands away. "Ye're
wanting me to leave him?" the dwarf cried. "Me brother! Me dead
brother! No, I'm not going, never going. I'll stay by me brother's side. Stay
here and keep me Pikel druid warm!"
"He
is dead, Ivan," Cadderly said through his own budding sniffles.
"Gone. You cannot keep the warmth in his body. You cannot do anything for
him"
"Shut
yer mouth!" Ivan roared again, reaching for his axe. Cadderly thought the
dwarf meant to chop him down, feared that Ivan blamed him for what had happened
to Pikel, but Ivan never even found the strength to lift the heavy weapon and
instead tumbled back down over Pikel.
Cadderly
realized that he would get nowhere reasoning with the grieving dwarf, but
Ivan's outburst incited other ideas in the young scholar. There was one emotion
that could overrule even grief, and Ivan seemed all too willing to let that
emotion take charge.
"You
can do nothing," Cadderly said again, "but repay the one who did this
to Pikel."
Suddenly
Cadderly had Ivan's full attention.
"He
is down here, Ivan," Cadderly prodded, though he didn't like leading the
dwarf on like this. "Pikel's killer is down here."
"The
imp!" Ivan roared, looking around wildly for the creature.
"No,"
Cadderly replied, "not the imp, but the imp's master."
"The
imp's what poisoned me brother!" Ivan protested.
"Yes,
but the imp's master brought the imp, and the curse, and all the evil that led
to Pikel's demise," replied Cadderly. He knew he was taking license in
drawing such conclusions, but if he could get Ivan moving, then it would be
worth the deceit. "If we can defeat the master, then the imp and all the
evil will follow.
"The
master, Ivan," Cadderly said again, "he who brought the curse."
"Ye
brought the curse," Ivan snarled, fingering his two-headed axe again and
eyeing Cadderly suspiciously.
"No,"
Cadderly quickly corrected, seeing his conniving tactics taking an entirely
different light. "I played an unfortunate role in its release, but I did
not bring it. There is one down here-there must be-who brought the curse and
sent the skeletons and the imp down here after us, down here to kill your
brother!"
"Where
is he?" Ivan cried, springing up from Pikel and clasping his heavy axe in
both hands. "Where's me brother's killer?" The dwarfs eyes darted all
about wildly, as if he expected some new monster to appear at any moment.
"We
must find him," Cadderly prodded. "We can go back the way we came,
back into the tunnels I remember."
"Go
back?" The idea didn't seem to please Ivan.
"Just
until I remember the way, Ivan," Cadderly explained, "then we'll go
forward, to the room with the cursed bottle, to where we shall find your
brother's killer." He could only hope his words were true and that Ivan
would relax by the time they found the room.
"Forward!"
Ivan yelled, and he scooped up one of the barely glowing torches, whipped it
about frantically to refuel the flame, and stormed off back the way they had
come. Cadderly checked to make certain that he had all of his belongings, said
a final good-bye to Pikel, and ran to catch up.
They
had not gone far when they came upon the first group of skeletons, five
monsters wandering down a side passage. The disoriented skeletons, refugees
from Druzil's disastrous battle, made no move to attack, but Ivan, blind with
rage, turned on them with a fury that Cadderly had never before imagined.
"Ivan,
no," Cadderly pleaded, seeing the dwarfs intent. "Let them alone. We
have more important ..."
Ivan
never heard him. The dwarf let out a roar and a snarl and rushed at the
skeletons. The two closest turned to meet the charge, but Ivan overwhelmed
them. He launched a mighty side cut with his axe that cleaved one in half, then
shifted the weapon's momentum as it whirled behind him and drove it straight
over his head, coming down on top of the second skeleton with enough force to
shatter the monster.
Ivan
let go of the weapon, entangled once more in bones, and caught the third
skeleton with his deer-homed helmet, lifting the monster dear of the ground,
shaking it wildly for a moment, then slamming it into the wall. The attack
damaged the skeleton, but it also dislodged Ivan's helmet. The clawing fingers
of the fourth skeleton found an opening in the dwarfs defenses and dug into the
back of his neck.
Cadderly
came running down to help, readying his walking stick for a swing at Ivan's
newest attacker. Before he could get into the fray, though, Ivan took things
into Percival own hands. He reached around and caught the skeleton by its bony
wrist, then pulled and spun for all his life.
Cadderly
dove for the ground, nearly sliced by the flying skeleton's legs and feet. Ivan
picked up momentum in Percival twirl and soon had the skeleton spinning
straight out at arms' length. He let the momentum build for a moment, then
shuffled a step closer to a wall and let the bricks do Percival work. The
skeleton slammed against them and broke apart and Ivan was left holding an
unattached bone.
The
last of the skeletons was on the dwarf then, and Ivan, dizzy and a bit
disoriented, took the monster's first clawing hand squarely in the face. Again
Cadderly started to help Percival friend, but one of the other skeletons was
back up and closing, still bearing Ivan's helmet entangled in its ribs.
Ivan
slammed a forearm into his attacker's ribs. The dwarf's stubby legs pumped
wildly, driving the monster back toward a wall. When it pressed in, Ivan did
not stop. His every muscle tensed and then snapped, launching him forward and
bringing the only weapon he had available, his forehead, to bear.
He
slammed the skeleton in the face, and the creature's skull exploded in the
crush between the rock wall and the dwarfs equally tough head. Bits of bone
popped out to the sides, other pieces were ground into dust, and Ivan bounced
back, Percival head badly gashed. .
Cadderly
smacked at the remaining monster with Percival walking stick and snapped
Percival spindle-disks into its face once and then again. The stubborn creature
came on, slashing its bony fingers and forcing Cadderly into retreat. Soon,
though, Cadderly felt the wall at his back and had nowhere left to run.
One
hand had latched firmly onto Cadderly's shoulder. The other slashed at his
face. He got his own hand up to block but found himself helplessly pinned with
the bony fingers digging deeper into His flesh. He tried desperately to hook
the skeleton's arm under his own, to twist it around and break the monster's
grasp, but Cadderly's attack was designed to twist muscles and tendons and
inflict such pain on an attacker as to disable him. Skeletons had no muscles or
tendons and felt no pain.
Cadderly
put his one free hand against the skeleton's face and tried to push it away-and
got a wicked bite on the wrist for his efforts.
Then
the skeleton's head disappeared in an instant, went flying away. Cadderly
didn't understand until Ivan's second axe chop, a downward cut, destroyed the
skeletal body.
Cadderly
leaned back against the wall and clutched at his bloodied wrist. He simply
dismissed his own pain a moment later, thinking his wounds minor indeed when he
looked upon Ivan.
Pieces
of skull bone were embedded in the dwarfs forehead. Blood ran freely down
Ivan's face, along the sides of his neck, and from numerous cuts on his gnarly
hands. Even more horrifying, a skeleton's broken rib bone stuck out from the
side of the dwarfs abdomen. Cadderly could not tell how deeply the bone had
gone, but the wound seemed wicked indeed and he was truly amazed that the dwarf
was still standing.
He
reached for Ivan, meaning to support his friend, fearing that Ivan would
topple.
Ivan
roughly slapped his hand away. "No time for coddling," the dwarf
barked. "Where's the one that killed me brother?"
"You
need help," Cadderly replied, horrified by his friend's condition.
"Your wounds ..."
"Forget
them," Ivan retorted. "Get me to the one that killed me
brother!"
"But
Ivan," Cadderly continued to protest. He pointed to the skeletal rib.
Ivan's
eyes did widen when he noticed the ghastly wound, but he only shrugged his
shoulders, reached down to grasp the bone, and pulled it free, casually tossing
it aside as though he hadn't even noticed the several inches of bloodstains
upon it. Ivan's attitude was similarly uncaring when he tried to put his helmet
back on, only to find that the embedded bones blocked him from seating it
correctly on his head. He plucked a few chips from his forehead, then, with a
grunt, forced the helmet into place.
Cadderly
could only assume that the cursing mist had increased the dwarfs rage to a
point where Ivan simply did not acknowledge pain. He knew that dwarves were a
tough lot, Ivan more than most, but this was beyond belief.
"Ye
said ye'd take me to him!" Ivan roared, and his words rang like a threat
in Cadderly's ears. "Ye said ye'd find the way!" In a move of
concession, Ivan reached up and tore off Cadderly's cloak and used it to
quickly tie off his wound.
Cadderly
had to be satisfied with that. He knew that the best he could do for everybody,
Ivan included, was to find and dose the smoking bottle as quickly as he could.
Only then would the enraged dwarf allow Cadderly or anyone else to tend to his
injuries.
Only
then, but Cadderly was not so certain that Ivan would make it that far.
They
soon came back to the original areas where they had encountered the undead
monsters. All was quiet now, deathly still, giving Cadderly the opportunity to
carefully reconstruct his first passage through. He thought that he was making
some progress, leading Ivan down several adjoining passages, when he noticed
some movement far down one hall, at the very edge of his narrow light beam.
Ivan
noticed it, too, and he set off at once. his grief for his dead brother
transferred again into uncontrollable battle lust.
Cadderly fumbled with his bandolier and tried
futility to keep up with the dwarf, pleading with Ivan to let this enemy go.
It was
a single skeleton this time, wandering aimlessly at first, but then coming
straight in at the charging dwarf.
Cadderly
came to a very important decision at that moment.
He held
his light beam in one hand and his loaded crossbow in the other, lining both up
between the horns of the dwarfs helmet at the skeletal face beyond. Cadderly
had never intended his custom-designed crossbow to be used as a weapon,
especially not while firing the exploding darts. He had designed the bow for
opening locked doors, or blasting away troublesome tree branches that scraped
against his window, or a variety of other nonviolent purposes. Also, he had to
admit, he had designed the crossbow and the bolts in part for the simple
challenge of designing them. But Cadderly had vowed to himself, as much as an
excuse as anything else, never to use the darts or the bow as a weapon, never
to unleash the concentrated violence of the explosive darts against a living
target.
The
arguments in this instance were many, of course. Ivan could ill afford another
fight, even against a single skeleton, and the skeleton, after all, was not
really a living creature. Still, Cadderly's guilt hovered over him as he took
aim. He knew that he was breaking the spirit of his vow.
He
fired. The bolt arced over Ivan's head and crashed into the charging skeleton's
face. The initial impact wasn't so great, but then the dart collapsed, setting
off the oil of impact. When the dust cleared a moment later, the skeleton's
head and neck were gone.
The
headless bones stood a moment longer, then dropped with a rattle.
Ivan,
just a few strides away, stopped abruptly and stared in amazement, his jaw
hanging open and his dark eyes wide. He turned slowly back to Cadderly, who
only shrugged apologetically and looked away.
"It
had to be done," Cadderly remarked, more to himself than to Ivan.
"And
ye did it well!" Ivan replied, coming back down the passage. He clapped
Cadderly on the back, though Cadderly did not feel heroic in the least.
"Let
us go on," Cadderly said quietly, slipping the crossbow back into its wide
and shallow sheath.
They
crossed under another low archway, Cadderly beginning to believe that they were
again on the right path, and then came to a fork in the dusty passage. Two
tunnels ran out from the one, parallel and very near together. Cadderly thought
for a moment, then started down the right side. He went only a few steps,
though, before he recognized his location more clearly. He backtracked,
ignoring Ivan's grumbling, and moved at a determined pace down the left
passage. This corridor went on for just a short distance, then angled farther
to the left and opened into a wider passage.
Standing
sarcophagi filled the alcove in this passage, confirmation to Cadderly that he
had chosen the right path. A few steps in and beyond a slight bend, he knew
beyond doubt. Far in front of them, at the end of the passage, loomed a door,
cracked open and with light shining through.
"That
the place?" Ivan demanded, though he had already guessed the answer. He started
off before Cadderly nodded in reply.
Again
Cadderly tried futility to slow the dwarfs charge, desiring a more cautious
approach. He was just a couple of steps behind Ivan when the last sarcophagus
swung open and a mummy stepped out to block the way. Too enraged to care, Ivan
continued on undaunted, but Cadderly no longer followed. The young scholar was
frozen with fear, stricken by the sheer evilness of the powerful undead
presence. The skeletons had been terrifying, but they seemed only minor inconveniences
next to this monster.
"Irrational,"
Cadderly tried to tell himself. It was acceptable to be afraid, but ridiculous
to let that fear paralyze him in so urgent a situation.
"Outta
me way!" Ivan roared, bearing in. He chopped viciously with his axe,
scoring a hit, but, unlike the battle against the skeletons, the weapon met
stiff resistance this time. The mummy's thick wraps deflected much of the
blow's force, and pieces of the linen came unraveled, snarling the axe-head and
preventing Ivan from following through.
The hit
hardly hindered the mummy. It clubbed with its arm, catching Ivan on the
shoulder and sending him spinning into the nearest alcove. He crashed heavily
and nearly swooned but stubbornly, unsteadily, forced himself back to his feet.
The
mummy was waiting for him. A second hit knocked the dwarf down to his back.
That
would have been the end of Ivan Bouldershoulder had it not been for Cadderly.
His first attack was almost inadvertent, for the mummy, in going after Ivan,
crossed the direct, narrow beam of Cadderly's fight tube. A creature of the
night, of a dark and lightless world, Khalif was neither accustomed to, nor
tolerant of, brightness of any kind.
Seeing
the mummy recoil and lift its scabrous arm to block the beam restored a bit of
composure in Cadderly. He kept the fight focused on the monster, forcing it
back from Ivan, while he nimbly loaded another dart with his free hand.
Cadderly held no reservations about using his crossbow on this monster; the
mummy was simply too hideous for his conscience to argue.
Still
shielding its eyes, the mummy advanced on Cadderly, slapping at the beam of
fight with every sliding step.
The
first dart buried itself deeply into the mummy's chest before exploding, and
the blast sent the monster back a couple of steps and left scorch marks both
front and back on the creature's linen wrappings. If it had suffered any
serious damage, though, the mummy didn't show it, for it came on again.
Cadderly
scrambled to reload the crossbow. His design had been good, fortunately, and
the crank was not difficult to execute. A second dart joined the first, again
driving the monster backward.
The mummy came on again, and again after
Cadderly had shot it a third time, and each time its stubborn advance brought it
a step or two closer to the frantic young man. The fourth shot proved
disastrous to Cadderly, for the dart's initial momentum drove it right through
the mummy without ever igniting the magical oil. The mummy hardly slowed and
Cadderly nearly held the crossbow right against its filthy wrappings when he
fired his fifth shot.
This
time the dart had more effect, but again it only slowed, and did not stop, the
monster. Cadderly had no time to load another dart.
"Coming!"
slurred Ivan as he crawled from the alcove.
Cadderly
doubted that the dwarf could help him, even if Ivan could reach the monster in
time, which he obviously couldn't. The young scholar knew, too, that neither of
his conventional weapons, spindle-disks or walking stick, could hurt this monster.
He had
just one weapon to use. He stuck the light tube out in front of him, slowing
the mummy further, causing it to shield its eyes and half turn away from him,
then he dropped his crossbow and reached with his free hand for the water skin
hanging at his side. He grabbed it by the extended nozzle, tucked it tight
under his arm, and used his thumb to pop off its gooey cap. Cadderly squeezed
with his arm, slowly and steadily sending a stream of the blessed water into
his attacker's face.
The
holy water sizzled as it struck the evilly enchanted monster and, for the first
time in the battle, the mummy revealed its agony. It let out an unearthly,
spine-chilling wail that filled Cadderly with fear and even stopped Ivan-
temporarily. It was the proverbial bark with no bite, for while the mummy
continued to advance, it purposely shied away from the man with the light beam
and the stinging water. Soon it had passed Cadderly altogether, but it
continued down the passage, roaring with pain and frustration, clubbing with
its powerful arms against the walls, the sarcophagi, and anything else that got
in its way.
Ivan
came rushing past Cadderly, intent on resuming the battle.
"The
man who killed your brother is behind the door!" Cadderly cried as quickly
as he could, desperate to stop the dwarf this time. He couldn't know the truth
of his claim, of course, but at that critical moment, he would have said
anything to turn Ivan around.
Predictably,
Ivan did wheel about. He let out a growl and charged back past Cadderly,
forgetting all about the fleeing mummy, his unblinking eyes glued instead on
the door at the end of the passage.
Cadderly
saw disaster coming. He recalled the newly constructed wall in the wine cellar
and the blasts that had followed Pikel's battering-ram charger He had to
believe that this door might also be magically warded, and he saw that the door
was heavy, iron-bound. If Ivan didn't get right through, but was held in the
area of exploding glyphs...
Cadderly
dove to the ground, pulling a dart and grabbing for his crossbow. In a single
motion, he cocked it, fitted the bolt, and spun about, using his light beam to
show him the target.
The
dart passed Ivan just a stride from the door. It didn't hit the lock area
directly but exploded with enough force to weaken the jam.
Surprised
by the sudden blast, but unable to stop even if he chose to, Ivan barreled in.
A
Well-Placed Blow
"No!"
she heard the druid say at her back, but it was a distant call, as if
Newander's voice were no more than a memory of some other time and some other
place. All that mattered to Danica was the wall, made of stonework now and not
like the natural dirt tunnel that had led them in. The wall, inviting her,
enticing her, to emulate her long-dead hero. That distant voice spoke again,
but in clicks and chatter that Danica could not understand.
A furry
tail fell down over Danica's eyes, breaking her concentration on the stone. She
moved one hand merely by reflex to push aside the distraction.
Following
the druid's instructions, Percival promptly bit her. Danica dipped her shoulder
and came across with an instinctive chop that would have killed the squirrel.
She recognized Percival before she struck, though, and that led her again out
of the red mist and back to reality. "The wall," she stammered.
"I meant to ..." "It is not your fault," Newander said to
her. "The curse affected you again. It would seem to be an endless
fight."
Danica
slumped back against the stone, weary and ashamed. She had put every effort
into resisting the intrusive mist, had seen it for what it was and planted
deeply in her own thinking the logical conclusion that such destructive
impulses must be avoided. Yet here she was, near the heart of danger,
abandoning their entire hopes for success for the sake of her curse-enhanced
desires.
"Do
not accept the guilt," Newander said to her. "You are braving the
curse better than any of the priests above us. You have come this far against
it, and that alone is more than most others can say."
"The
dwarves walk with Cadderly," Danica reminded him.
"Do
not hold yourself against that measure," Newander warned. "You are no
dwarf. The bearded folk have a natural resistance to magic that no human can
match. Theirs is not a question of self-discipline. Lady Danica, but of physical
differences."
Danica
realized that the druid spoke the truth, but the knowledge that Pikel and Ivan
had an advantage over her in resisting the curse did little to diminish her
sense of guilt. For all of the druid's talk, Danica considered the intrusive
mist a mental challenge, a test of discipline.
"What
of Newander?" she asked suddenly, more sarcastically than she had
intended. "Does the blood of the bearded folk run in your veins? You are
no dwarf. Why, then, are you not affected?"
The
druid looked away; it was his turn to feel the weight of guilt. "I do not
know," he admitted, "but you must believe that I feel the curse
keenly with my every step.
"Cadderly
guessed that the mist pushes a person to what is in his heart. The gluttons eat
themselves to death. The suffering priests cut each other apart in religious
frenzy. My own druid brothers revert to animal form, losing themselves in
altered states of being. Why, then, is Newander not running with the
animals?"
Danica recognized that the druid's last
question was a source of great and sincere anguish. They had discussed this
once before, but Newander had offered little explanation for himself, focusing
his responses on why Cadderly might have escaped the curse.
"My
guess is that the curse has found no hold on my heart, that my own desires are
not known to me," the druid went on. "Have I failed at my
calling?" Tears rolled openly down Newander's face and he appeared on the
verge of a breakdown, a dear sign to Danica that he was indeed being affected
by the red mist. "Have I no calling?" Newander wailed. He crumbled to
the floor, head in hands, his shoulders shuddering with heavy sobs.
"You
are mistaken," Danica said with enough force to command the druid's
attention. "If you have failed in your calling, or if you have no calling,
then why do you retain the magical spells that are a gift of your god,
Silvanus? You brought the vines in my window, and the moss to life against the
ghouls."
Newander
composed himself, intrigued by Danica's words. He found the strength to stand
and this time did not look away from her.
"Perhaps
it is the truth in your heart that has led you to defeat the curse,"
Danica reasoned. "When did you first feel the curse acting upon you?"
Newander
thought back a couple of days, to when he had returned to the library to find
Arcite and Cleo already in the throes of their shape change. "I felt it
soon after I returned," he explained. "I had been out in the
mountains, watching over an eagle aerie." Newander recalled that time clearly,
remembered his own insight concerning the su-monsters. "I knew that
something was out of sorts as soon as I came back in the library's doors. I
went to find my druid brothers, but, alas, they were deep into their animal
forms by then, and I could not reach them."
"There
is your answer," Danica said after a moment of thought. "You are a
priest of natural order, and this curse is certainly a perversion of that
order. You said that you can sense the presence of undead-so, I believe, did
you sense the presence of the curse."
How had
he known that the ghouls were coming? Newander wondered. There were spells to
detect the presence of such undead, but he had not enacted any and still knew
that they were there, just as he had known that the su-monsters were evil
creatures and not just predatory animals. The implications of his insight
nearly overwhelmed the druid.
"You
give me more credit than I deserve," he said somberly to Danica.
"You
are a priest of the natural order," Danica said again. "I do not
think you alone have resisted this curse, but you were not, are not, alone. You
walk with your faith, and it is that sincere calling that has given you the
strength to resist. Arcite and Cleo had no warning. The curse was upon them
before they knew anything was wrong, but their failure forewarned you of the
danger, and with that warning, you have been able to keep true to your
calling."
Newander
shook his head, not convinced, not daring to believe that he possessed such
inner strength. He had no rebuttals against Danica's reasoning, though, and he
would not deny anything where Silvanus, the Oak Father, was concerned. He had
given his heart to Silvanus long ago, and there his heart remained, despite any
curiosities Newander might hold for the ways of progress and civilization. Was
it possible that he was so true a disciple of the Oak Father? Was it possible
that what he had perceived as failure, in not transforming into animal form, as
Arcite and Cleo had done, might actually reflect strength?
"We
lose time in asking questions we cannot answer," he said at length, his
voice more steady. "Whatever the cause, both you and I found the way
dear."
Danica
looked back to the stone wall with concern. "For now at least," she
added. "Let us be off again, before my will wanes."
They crossed under several archways, Danica
holding the torch far out in front of her to bum the unrelenting cobwebs from
their path. Neither of them had much experience with travel underground, or
with the common designs of catacombs, and their course was a wandering one;
they chose tunnels more or less at random. Danica was thoughtful enough to
scratch directional marks at the more confusing turns, in case they had to
retrace their steps, but still she feared that she and the druid would become lost
in the surprising^ intricate complex.
They
saw some signs of previous passage-torn webbing hanging in loose strands, an
upset crate in one comer-but whether these had been caused by Cadderly, by
other monsters such as the ghouls, or simply by some animal that had made its
home in the catacombs, neither of them could say.
Their
torch burned low as they entered one long passage. Several side corridors ran
off this one, mostly along the right-hand wall, and Danica and Newander agreed
that they would stay the course this time and not continue to wander in
circles. They passed by the first few passages, Danica entering just a few feet
with the torch to get a quick glimpse of what lay down each, but stayed in the
main tunnel and meant to until they reached its end.
Finally
they came to a passage they could not ignore. Danica went in, again for a quick
perusal. "They have been here!" she cried out, the realization
drawing her farther down the tunnel. The sights there confirmed Danica's
suspicions. A battle had been fought here; dozens of bone piles lay strewn
about the floor and several skulls, forcibly removed from their skeletal
bodies, greeted them with sightless eye sockets. Two lines of piled crates
formed a defensive run farther in, a place where Danica soon reasoned that
Cadderly and the dwarves had made their stand.
"The
bones agree with my sensing of the undead," Newander said grimly,
"but we cannot be certain that it was our friends who fought them
here."
The
confirmation came even as he spoke, as Danica moved her torch slowly about for
a wider view of the battle-torn area.
"Pikel!"
the woman cried, running to the fallen dwarf. Pikel lay cold and still just as
Ivan had left him, his burly arms crossed over his chest and his tree-trunk
club lying at his side.
Danica
fell to her knees to examine the dwarf but had no doubts that he was dead. She
shook her head as she studied his wounds, for none of them seemed serious
enough to fell one of Pikel's toughness.
Newander
understood her confusion. He knelt beside her and uttered a few words as he
waved his hand slowly over the body.
"There
is a poison in this one," the druid announced grimly. "A wicked brew
indeed, gone straight to his heart."
Danica
cupped her hands under Pikel's head and gently lifted his face to hers. He had
been a dear friend, possibly the most likable person Danica ever had known. It
occurred to her, holding him, that he had not been dead for very long. His lips
had gone blue, but there was no swelling at all and there remained warmth in
his body.
Danica's
eyes widened and she turned on Newander. "After we fought the ghouls, you
told me that you had a spell to counter any poisons I might have
contracted," she said.
"And
so I do," Newander replied, understanding her intent, "but the poison
has done its work on this one. My spell cannot undo the dwarf's death."
"Use
the spell," Danica insisted. She moved quickly, propping Pikel under the
neck with one arm and tilting his head backward.
"But
it will not-"
"Use
it, Newander!" Danica snapped at him. The druid backed off a step, fearing
that the mist had again taken hold of his companion.
"Trust
me, I beg," Danica continued, softening her tone, for she recognized the
druid's sudden caution.
Newander
didn't understand what Danica might have in mind, but after all they had been
through, he did trust her. He paused a moment to consider the spell, then took
an oak leaf from Percival pocket and crumbled it on top of the dwarf, uttering
the proper chant.
Danica
opened Pikel's cloak and unbuckled the breastplates of his heavy armor. She
looked to Newander for confirmation that Percival spell was complete.
"
there is any poison left in this one, it has been neutralized," the druid
assured her.
It was
Danica's turn. She dosed her eyes and thought of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn's
most prized scroll, the notes of physical suspension. Penpahg D'Ahn had stopped
his breathing, even his heart, for several hours. One day Danica meant to do
the same. She was not yet ready for such a demanding trial, she knew, but there
were aspects of Penpahg D'Ahn's writings, particularly those involved with
coming out of the physical suspension, that she knew would be of help to her
now.
Danica
thought of the steps required to restart the suspended heart, hi the writings,
these were internal, of course, but their principles might be duplicated by an
outside force. Danica laid Pikel back down flat, unbuttoned Percival vest, and
pulled his nightshirt up high. She could hardly see the details of his chest
through the virtual sweater of hair, but she persisted, feeling Percival ribs
and hoping that a dwarf's anatomy was not so different from a human's.
She had
found the spot-she thought. She looked back to Newander for support, then, to
the druid's obvious surprise, turned back suddenly and rapped her free hand
sharply into the hollow of the dwarf's breast. She waited just a moment, then
rapped again. Danica's intensity multiplied; all her heart went into her work
on Pikel, and that only encouraged the cursing mist to creep back in.
"Lady
Danica!" Newander cried, grabbing the frantic woman's shoulder. "You
should show more respect to the dead!"
Danica
whipped her arm around and back, hooking the druid behind the knees. A sudden
jerk sent Newander to the floor, then Danica resumed her work, furiously
pounding away. She heard a rib crack but wound up for yet another blow.
Newander
was back at her, grabbing her more forcefully this time and tearing her from
the corpse.
They
wrestled for a moment, Danica easily gaining an advantage. She put Newander
flat on his back and scrambled atop him, her fist coming up dangerously over
the druid's face.
"Oooi!"
The
call froze both Danica and Newander.
"What
have you done?" Newander gasped.
Danica,
as surprised as the druid, shook her head and slowly turned about. There sat
Pikel, looking sore and confused but very much alive. He smiled when he gazed
upon Danica.
The
woman rushed off Newander and tackled the dwarf, wrapping him in a tight hug.
Newander came over, too, patting both of them heartily on the shoulders.
"A
miracle," the druid muttered.
Danica
knew better, knew that reviving Pikel had involved some very logical and well
documented principles in the teachings of Grandmaster Penpahg D'Ahn.
Nonetheless, Danica, too amazed by what she had done and too relieved to see
Pikel again drawing breath, did not find the resolve to answer.
"This
is a fortunate meeting," Danica reasoned after the hugging had ended.
"Oo
oi!" Pikel was quick to agree.
"More
than for you," Danica started to explain.
Newander
cast her a curious look.
"This
is our first proof that the tunnel we entered connects to the area that
Cadderly went into," said Danica. "Until we found Pikel, we were
lost."
"Now
we know," added Newander, "and we know, too, that we have crossed
Cadderly's path. Perhaps now we shall find a clearer trail to follow." He
bent low with the torch, studying the floor for some signs, but came up a
moment later shaking his head. "It is a tiny path if it is one at
all," he lamented.
A smile
widened on Danica's face. "Tiny for us, perhaps," she said. "But
maybe dear enough for Percival."
Pikel
sat confused, but Newander's smile surpassed Danica's. The druid uttered a few
sounds to Percival, asking the squirrel to lead them to Cadderly. Percival hopped
about for a few moments, scratching at the ground and searching for some
pattern, either in the scuff marks or the scent.
He
caught the trail and set off down the passage, Newander right behind. Danica
helped Pikel to his feet. He was still unsteady, and still thoroughly confused,
but he called upon the two most prominent dwarven traits, toughness and
stubbornness, and made his way beside the young woman.
* * * *
*
Sleep
had been such a pleasant thing, but somewhere deep in his thoughts Druzil realized
that he was dangerously vulnerable lying in a crack in the wall of a deserted
corridor. The imp pulled himself out of the cubby and shape-changed back to his
more customary, bat-winged form. Somewhere in his slumber, he had lost the
concentration necessary for invisibility and could not sort through the fog
that remained in his mind enough to recover it. That sleepy fog was heavy, but
the imp kept one thought clear: he must get back to Barjin, back to the safety
of his magical gate connection to Castle Trinity. He knew that someone recently
had exited this passage and, having no desire to meet any enemies, he took a
roundabout, meandering course.
He
stopped and held very still a short while later when the crazed mummy came
storming by, smashing anything and everything in its path. Druzil realized that
something had gone terribly wrong, recognized that the mummy, scorched and
blasted in many places, had gone out of control.
The
monster was gone then, slamming down a side corridor, growling and bashing
things with its heavy arms with every step.
Druzil's
wings flapped slowly as he half-walked and half-flew back toward the altar
room.
Yes,
Barjin would help him, and if not Barjin, then surely Aballister. With that
thought in mind, the imp sent out a weak, sleepy message to his master back at
Castle Trinity.
Face to
Face
Ivan
hit the loose-swinging door with a terrific impact, jolting it free of one of
its hinges. Cadderly's fears were proved true, for several fiery explosions
went off in rapid succession as Ivan crossed the threshold. If the door had
stopped, or even delayed his charge, he would have been roasted.
As it
was, Cadderly was not certain if the dwarf had survived. Ivan skidded into the
room on his face, wisps of smoke rising from several points on his body.
Cadderly rushed in right behind to get to his friend; he could only hope that
no glyphs remained.
The
young scholar didn't quite make it to Ivan, though. As soon as he entered the
room, squinting in the brightness of the several torches and blazing brazier,
he saw that he and Ivan were not alone.
"You
have done well to come so far," Barjin said calmly, standing halfway
across the room, beside the altar that held the ever-smoking bottle. Torches
lined the wall to either side of the priest, but the brighter light came from a
brazier along
the wall to Cadderly's right, which Cadderly
correctly guessed was an interplanar gate.
"I
applaud your resilience," Barjin continued, his tone teasing, "futile
though it will prove."
Every
memory came rushing back to Cadderly in clear order and focus when he saw
Barjin. The first thought that crossed his mind was that he would go back up
and have a few nasty words with Kierkan Rufo, the man who had, he believed,
kicked him down the stairway from the wine cellar in the first place. His
resolve to scold Rufo did not take firm hold, though, not when Cadderly
considered the dangers before him. His eyes did not linger on the priest, but
rather on the man standing next to Barjin.
"Mullivy?"
he asked, though he knew by Mullivy's posture and the grotesque bend of his
wrecked arm that this was not the groundskeeper he once had known.
The
dead man did not reply.
"A
friend of yours?" Barjin teased, draping an arm over his zombie. "Now
he is my friend, too.
"I
could have him kill you quite easily," Barjin went on. "But, you see,
I believe I shall reserve that pleasure for myself." He removed the
obsidian-headed mace from his belt, its sculpted visage that of a pretty young
girl. Next, Barjin pulled on the conical hood hanging in back of his clerical
robes. This fit over his head as a helmet might, with holes cut for Barjin's
eyes. Cadderly had heard about enchanted, protecting vestments and he knew that
his nemesis was armored.
"For
all your valiant efforts, young priest, you remain a minuscule thorn in my
side," Barjin remarked. He took a step toward Cadderly but stopped
suddenly when Ivan hopped back to his feet.
The
dwarf shook his head vigorously, then looked about, as if seeing the room for
the first time. He glanced at Cadderly, then focused on Barjin. "Tell me,
lad," Ivan asked, swinging his double-bladed axe up to a ready position on
his shoulder, "is he the one who killed me brother?"
* * * *
*
Aballister
wiped a cloth over his sweaty brow. He could not bear to continue peering
through his magical mirror, but he had not the strength to turn his eyes away.
He had felt Barjin's urgency when first he sent his thoughts to the distant
altar room, unable to hear his inability to contact his imp. Aballister worried
for Druzil and for the cleric, though his fears for and of Barjin were
double-sided indeed. For all of his ambiguity, though, for all of his fears of
Barjin and the power gains his rival would enjoy, Aballister honestly believed
he did not want to see Tuanta Quiro Miancay, the Most Fatal Horror, fail.
Then
the enemies had revealed themselves-himself, for Aballister hardly took note of
the stumbling dwarf. It was the young scholar that held the wizard's thoughts,
the tall and straight lad, twenty years old perhaps, with the familiar,
inquisitive eyes.
Aballister
sensed Barjin's mounting confidence and knew that the evil priest was back in
control, that Barjin and Tuanta Quiro Miancay would not be defeated.
Somehow
that notion seemed even more disturbing to the wizard. He stared hard and long
at the young scholar, a boy really, who had come in bravely and foolishly to
face his doom.
* * * *
*
Cadderly
nodded at Ivan. The dwarfs eyes narrowed dangerously as he glared back at the
evil priest. "Ye shouldn't have done that," Ivan growled in a low and
death-promising tone. He held his axe high and began a steady advance. "Ye
shouldn't have-"
Waves
of mental energy stopped Ivan in midsentence and midstep. Barjin's spell broke
the dwarfs thought patterns, holding him firmly in place. Ivan struggled with
all his mental strength and all the resistance a dwarf could muster, but Barjin
was no minor spellcaster and this was his evilly blessed altar room, where his
clerical magic was at its highest. Ivan managed a few indecipherable sounds,
then stopped talking and moving altogether.
"Ivan?"
Cadderly asked, his voice shaky as he suspected his companion's fate.
"Do
keep talking," Barjin taunted. "The dwarf can hear your every word,
though I assure you that he'll not respond."
Barjin's
ensuing laughter sent shivers through Cadderly's bones. They had come so far
and through so much. Pikel had died to get them here, and Ivan had taken a
terrible beating. And now to fail. Looking at this evil priest, with gruesome
Mullivy standing obediently at his side, Cadderly knew that he was overmatched.
"You
battled through my outer defenses, and for that you deserve my applause,"
Barjin continued, "but if you believed my true power would be revealed to
you out in the empty and meaningless corridors, then know your folly! Look upon
me, foolish young priest-" he waved a hand to the ever-smoking
bottle"-and look upon the agent of Talona that you yourself brought to
life. Tuanta Quiro Miancay, the Most Fatal Horror! "You should feel
blessed, young priest, for your pitiful library is the first to feel the
awesome power of the chaos that will dominate the region for centuries to
come!"
At that
awful moment, the threat did not sound so hollow in Cadderly's ears. Talona-he
knew the name: the Lady of Poison, of disease.
"Did
you expect to find the bottle unguarded?" Barjin laughed. "Did you
think to stroll in here after defeating a few minor monsters and simply dose
the flask that you yourself-" again the priest emphasized those painful
words "-opened?"
Cadderly
hardly heard the banter. His attention had gone to the bottle and the steady
stream of pinkish mist that issued from it. He thought of loading his crossbow
and putting an explosive dart into the bottle. Where would this Talona's agent
be then? Cadderly wondered. But Cadderly feared that action, feared that to
destroy the bottle would only release the evil agent, or whatever it was, in
full.
His
attention was stolen from the bottle suddenly, and he realized that the choice,
if ever he had one, had passed. The evil priest strode casually toward him, his
arm uplifted and holding a curious black mace, its head the image of a pretty
young girl, an innocent face so very out of place atop a weapon, a face that
strangely reminded Cadderly of Danica.
* * * *
*
Aballister
did not pause to consider his actions. His thoughts focused on the dwarf,
standing rigid a few steps ahead of the young man. The wizard summoned all of
his powers, sent a spell into the magic mirror and across the miles, tried to
use the scrying device as a magical gate for his focused magical energies.
The
mirror's own dweomer, not designed for such uses, resisted the attempt. It
could be used to see distant places, to converse with viewed creatures, even to
transport Aballister to those places viewed, but Aballister tried to carry that
ability farther now, to send not only his thoughts or physical being but his
magical energy flowing to the rigid dwarf.
It
would have been a difficult enough task, even for a wizard as powerful as
Aballister, if the attempt had been made on a human, but Ivan, though fully in
the throes of Barjin's paralyzing spell, fought back with typical dwarven
stubbornness against the wizard's intrusions.
Aballister
gritted his teeth and focused his concentration. Veins stood out on his
forehead; he thought the toll of the attempt would destroy him, but Barjin was
close to the young man now-too dose!-the awful mace held high.
Aballister
put his lips right up against the mirror and whispered, hoping that the dwarf
alone would hear, "Let me in, you fool!"
* * * *
*
Barjin
came on, smiling wickedly, victoriously. Cadderly gave him every reason for
confidence, offering no outward sign of resistance. The young scholar did have
his ram's head walking stick in one hand, but he hadn't even lifted it yet.
In
truth, Cadderly had decided on another defense, the only one he believed could
slow this imposing priest. His free hand clenched and unclenched at his side,
tightening the muscles, straightening a single finger for the coming strike. He
had seen, and keenly felt, Danica do this a dozen times.
Barjin
was only a step away, moving cautiously now for fear that Cadderly would take a
swipe at him with the walking stick.
Cadderly
kept its butt end firmly to the ground. Barjin maneuvered to the side, away
from the weapon, and swung his mace in a teasing cut. Cadderly easily stepped
back, though his concentration nearly faltered when he saw the mace's head
transform into the leering, open-mouthed visage of some unearthly monster,
fanged and hungry.
He kept
his wits enough to retaliate, though, and with Barjin expecting him to strike
with the walking stick, Percival hand got through the cleric's defenses.
Cadderly
drove his finger powerfully into Barjin's shoulder. He knew that he had hit the
precise spot, just as Danica had so often done to him. A look of sincere
confusion crossed the evil priest's face, and Cadderly nearly squealed in glee.
"Withering Touch!" he proclaimed. While Barjin was indeed confused,
his arm, and the cruel mace at the end of it, did not fall limply to his side.
Cadderly
was confused as well, and he barely reacted, at the very last instant, as
Barjin's mace whipped in with more determination. Cadderly turned and dove, but
the weapon clipped his shoulder, the evilly contorted face biting a deep gash.
Cadderly had intended to roll back to his feet a short distance away, but the
hit put him off balance and he crashed heavily instead into one of the room's
many bookcases.
The
wound itself was not too severe, but the frozen waves of agony rolling through
the young scholar's body most certainly were. Cadderly shuddered and trembled,
hardly able to comprehend, hardly able to focus through the dizzy blur. He knew
that he was doomed, knew that he could never recover in time to parry or dodge
the priest's next attack.
"-killed
me brother!" he heard Ivan roar, right where the dwarf had left off, and
then he heard Barjin yelp in surprise.
Ivan's
axe pounded into the priest's back, a blow that would have felled any man, but
Barjin was protected. His magical vestments absorbed the brunt of the bit; the
priest didn't even lose his breath. He wheeled about, swiping with Percival
mace in response.
Skilled
and seasoned, Ivan Bouldershoulder was ready. From just his single attack, he
realized that the priest was somehow powerfully armored. Barjin's blow cut
harmlessly short, and Ivan stepped in behind it, hooked one head of his weapon
under Barjin's shoulder, and heaved with all his strength, sending Barjin
tumbling head over heels back toward the altar in the center of the room.
Ivan
dropped his weapon's head to the ground and clasped his legs about its handle
so that he could spit into his hands before continuing. The priest had a wicked
weapon and nearly invulnerable armor, but the fiery dwarf had no doubts as to
how this fight would end. "You shouldn't have killed me brother,"
Ivan muttered one more time, then he grabbed his axe and moved in to finish the
work.
Barjin
had other ideas. He had no time to ponder how the dwarf might have broken free
from his binding spell, and it didn't really matter anyway. Barjin understood
the fury in this formidable foe, a curse-enhanced rage that more than evened
the odds, but Barjin didn't play with even odds.
He
scrambled over to the wall behind Mullivy. "Kill the dwarf!" he
instructed his zombie, and he pulled a burning torch from its sconce and
touched it to Mullivy's shoulder. The zombie's oil-soaked clothing ignited
immediately, but Barjin's protective spell did not fail. While the flames
consumed the oil and Mullivy's clothes, the zombie's body was quite unharmed.
Ivan's
startled response as the flaming zombie bore down on him would have made Pikel
proud: "Oo oi!"
Cadderly
started to rise, but the continuing, debilitating chilling bite of his wound
sent him spiraling back to the floor. He tried to shake away the pain, tried to
find some focus.
He saw
Ivan swiping wildly but sorely missing his mark as the dwarf steadily backed
away from the fiery zombie. Mullivy's advance showed no concern for the dwarfs
meager attacks. Cadderly heard the evil priest laughing, somewhere back by the
altar, by the cursing bottle. The priest would get Ivan, even if the naming
zombie did not, Cadderly knew. Then the priest would get him, and then this
Most Fatal Horror, this evil agent of an evil goddess, would win over the
Edificant Library fully and destroy everything the young scholar valued.
"No!"
Cadderly managed to cry, multiplying his concentration tenfold.
The
devilish mace had done its work well, even in a glancing blow on Cadderly's
shoulder. The mace had a life of its own, an inner and foul energy spawned
somewhere in the lowest pits of hell.
Cadderly
continued to battle against its stunning touch, tried to realign his physical
control with his mental determination, but his body didn't heed to his
commands; there remained a long road to travel.
* * * *
*
Nothing
rose to hinder the three companions' progress, and Percival appeared quite
adept at following Cadderly's trail. They came through several passageways,
always slowing to peer into the nearest alcoves and ensure that no monsters
waited to spring out.
Pikel grew steadier with each passing step
but seemed distracted, introspective. Danica could appreciate his somber mood;
he had just passed through death and returned. What tales might the enlightened
dwarf tell? Danica wondered. When she questioned him about the experience,
though he said only, "Oo," and would not elaborate.
At many
places, they could confirm that Percival was leading them correctly. Three-way
alcoves, thick with webbing on one side, had been burned clear on the other.
Soon
the party came to a fork in the tunnel. Hardly hesitating, Percival scampered
off down the right-hand side.
Sounds
of battle, not far off, echoed in their ears.
The
squirrel stopped suddenly and chattered excitedly, but his squeaks and chirps
were lost in the sudden commotion. Pikel, Danica, and Newander heard the
fighting, and none of them stopped to listen to the squirrel's banter. The
noise came from farther down the tunnel; that was all they needed to know. Off
they charged, the dwarf no longer introspective, but head down and running to
his brother's aid, and Danica and the druid no less determined to help their
friends.
When
they came to the altar room wall, they heard Ivan growling about some
"flaming hunk of walking kindling," and understood their error. While
the words were clear, the path certainly was not. No doors lined this section
of the passage, just blank wall.
Percival
came up chattering and scolding.
"We
have come the wrong way, so says the squirrel!" Newander told them.
"The path tracks back to the left!"
Danica
nodded. "Run, then!" she cried.
She and
Newander started away, but both stopped abruptly to regard Pikel, who was not
following.
The
agitated dwarf hopped up and down, stubby legs pumping rapidly, his whole body
building into a tremendous tremble.
"Me
brudder!" Pikel cried, and he lowered both his head and his tree trunk and
burst forward into the brick wall.
In the
Druid's Heart
The
wall was made only of brick and mortar and was no match for the rage of Pikel
Bouldershoulder. The dwarf battered through into the altar room, sending up a
cloud of dust and a shower of bricks. Pikel stood in the new doorway for a
moment, his eyes darting about to take in the scene. Several bricks came
straight down, bouncing off his pot helmet with dull clangs, but Pikel seemed
not to notice. He was looking for Ivan, his "brudder," and it would
take a lot more than a few chunks of stone, however heavy, to deter him.
Then he
saw Ivan, far to his left, near the room's original door and backing away from
a flaming humanoid creature. Repelled by the intense heat, Ivan's defensive
chops were falling short and, fast approaching a comer, Ivan soon would be out
of running room.
"Oo
oi!" Pikel cried, and he bounded off, pot-covered head and tree trunk
leading the way.
Danica
started in right behind, but Newander stopped her. She turned and saw a look of
sudden revelation on the druid's face, an expression that quickly changed to
one of sincere joy.
"You
spoke the truth, dear lady," Newander said. "It was not ambivalence,
but a sense of order that kept me free of the cursing mist. Now I know how I
was spared, why I was spared, and, in truth, it was a power far beyond my own
will."
Danica
consider the profound changes that had come over the man. No longer did
Newander stoop in despair. His back was straight and his visage proud.
"I
hear the call of Silvanus himself!" the druid declared. "His own
voice, I tell you."
Truly
intrigued, Danica would have liked to stay and hear Newander's explanation, but
the situation wouldn't allow it. She nodded quickly and pulled away from the
druid's grasp, taking only the split second it took her to come through the
wall to survey the room and determine her course. Her heart told her to go to
Cadderly, still dazed and struggling by the door, but her warrior instincts
told her that the best she could do for her beloved, and for all her friends,
was to stop the imposing priest who stood by the altar.
She
took two running strides at Barjin, dove into a roll just in case he had some
spell or dart aimed her way, then came back to her feet and pounded in. She
enacted her moves too quickly for Barjin to block, and she got her fist through
his defenses, slamming him solidly on the chest.
Danica
bounced back, stunned, her hand sore, as if she had struck an iron wall. Barjin
hadn't even moved.
Danica
kept her wits enough to dodge Barjin's first attack, and to. take note of the
contorting, biting movement of the enchanted mace's sculpted head. She circled
to the priest's right, away from the altar, wondering if perhaps her daggers
would have more effect. By all appearances, the priest wasn't wearing any
armor, but Danica trusted her sore hand more than her eyes. She knew that magic
could deceive, and she understood already that her tactics against the priest
would have to be akin to those she might use against an armored knight.
Barjin waved the Screaming Maiden again
easily, attacks designed to keep Danica at bay and to test her reflexes. She
realized that again the priest had underestimated her quickness. She stepped in
right behind the swing and snapped off two jabs at her opponent's weapon arm.
There,
too, the magical vestments repelled the blow.
Her
understanding of the extent of the priest's armor growing, Danica realized that
she would find few openings for strikes. The priest was covered head to toe and
the kind of power Danica expected she would need to get through the enchanted
vestments, a blow that required long concentration, would leave her vulnerable
to a preemptive hat. She took a different path then, one designed to get that
awful mace away from her adversary.
Danica
came in low, feigning a strike at Barjin's groin. The priest whipped the
Screaming Maiden straight down at the stooping woman, just as Danica had
expected.
She
brought her forearm up to block the blow. Her next move would have been to
reach under with her free hand, grabbing the priest's wrist. Pulling with this
hand and pushing with her locked forearm would then tear the mace from Percival
grasp. But, while Danica had correctly anticipated Barjin's overhand strike,
she had not foreseen the reaction of his vile, sentient, weapon.
The
Screaming Maiden twisted, its maw snapping futilely at the out-of-reach
blocking forearm. The ugly visage opened its mouth wide and hissed, loosing a
cone of frost over Danica.
Danica
began her dodge at the instant the chill emanated from the mouth, but the cone
encompassed too wide an area for her to get fully out of harm's way. Chilling
ice descended on her, so cold that it burned at her skin and so evil, the chill
of death, that it found its way deeper, into Danica's heart and bones. Her
lungs ached with her next gasp and it was all she could do to break away from
the encounter and stagger back toward the broken wall.
Newander
watched it all through a dull haze. He wisely registered the important
facts-Barjin's vestment armor and the mace, in particular-but the druid's
thoughts were turned primarily inward now, heeding, he believed, the personal
summons of Silvanus, the Oak Father. The sight of this room, of the cursing
bottle, had put many things into perspective for Newander. Gone now were his
fears that he, unlike his transformed druid companions, was somehow not true to
his calling. Gone was his fear that he had only avoided the brunt of the curse
because of some inner ambivalence. Perhaps that had been the case, but it
hardly mattered now to the druid. His gaze locked upon the evil priest, the one
who had raised the dead, the bringer of perversion, and he heard the commands
of nature's god.
He
remembered the su-monsters and how dearly he had sensed the approach of ghouls,
and Newander knew his purpose. Druids were dedicated to preserving the natural
order, the natural harmony, and his faith demanded that the evil priest be
stopped, here and now.
Newander
let his thoughts slip to the woodland, to the home of druidic power. He felt
the beginning twinges in his body- the first time he had ever achieved this
level of druidic concentration. Though a bit afraid, he encouraged the
engulfing power fully, focusing his own energies to push it along. There was a
sensation of distant pain as his bones cracked and reconfigured, a tickle as
hair sprouted across his body.
As had
Cleo and Arcite, Newander let himself go to his urging, let his body follow his
thoughts. Unlike his companions, though, Newander did not relinquish his thinking
to the instincts of the animal. His focus did not change with his body.
He saw
the evil priest's eyes widen as he pawed toward the altar, past the recoiling
Danica.
* * * *
*
Ivan
saw Pikel's storming approach, but the flaming zombie never turned to witness
the attack. At the last moment, Ivan dodged to the side and Pikel slammed in,
his tree trunk connecting squarely on Mullivy's rump. His stubby legs pumping
wildly, Pikel brutally drove the zombie into the wall. Still Pikel's legs did
not stop thrashing; he ignored the intense heat and kept the zombie pinned.
Mullivy
swung his good arm about wildly, but his back was to the attacker and he could
not reach beyond Pikel's pinning club. He wriggled and squirmed, trying to get
out the side of the pin. Every time he made some progress, though, Ivan rushed
over and smacked him hard with the axe.
This
went on for several moments, then luck turned against the dwarves. Mullivy
started out the side; Ivan waded in and hit him. The powerful blow drove deep
into Mullivy's arm, but sent a gout of flame flying back in Ivan's direction,
instantly igniting the dwarfs beard.
Ivan
dove away, slapping at the flames, and Pikel, distracted by his brother's
sudden distress, unconsciously loosened his hold.
Mullivy
slipped free of his captor and advanced on the rolling Ivan.
Pikel
overbalanced and stumbled forward into the wall. He came back up in an instant,
but again he saw Ivan in dire need and again the sight sent him on a ferocious
charge. This time Pikel held his club perpendicularly in front of him, one hand
on either end. Mullivy was just reaching down at Ivan when Pikel tat him. Again
the dwarf drove on, pushing the zombie before him. They passed the open
door-Pikel thought he saw a bat-winged impish form hovering outside-and
barreled headlong into an empty bookcase. The ancient wooden shelves fell apart
under their weight, and dwarf, zombie, and kindling crashed down in a fiery
heap.
* * * *
*
Long
and pointy teeth bared, the giant wolverine that Newander had become charged
the evil priest. The druid had a surprise in mind, an attack that the priest's
cloth vestments, however strengthened, might not be able to withstand. Just
before he reached the mark, Newander spun over suddenly and loosed a cloud of
vile musk.
The
disgusting spray rolled over Barjin, stinging his eyes, permeating his
clothing, and nearly overwhelming him. He fell back as quickly as he could,
trying to escape the cloud, gagging and gasping.
Newander's
pursuit was furious. He hooked his claws around the backpeddling priest's knees
and bore Barjin to the ground. Barjin kicked and scrambled, but the wolverine
was too quick and strong to be easily dislodged. Newander bit into Barjin's
Hugh, tearing and gnawing. Still the magical vestments repelled the attacks,
but they seemed not so invulnerable now. The stinking musk clung to them as
would an acid, already wearing at their integrity.
Barjin
twisted and screamed. He couldn't see through the bum in his eyes; he couldn't
think straight against the sudden-ness of the attack. He felt the gnawing bites
grow sharper and knew that he was in trouble. Very soon, the wolverine would be
through his vestments and those wicked teeth would be tearing at his exposed
thigh.
The
Screaming Maiden reached out empathically to Barjin, calmed him and let him see
through its eyes. Barjin stopped Percival struggling and followed the mace's
lead. Newander burrowed in, but the Screaming Maiden bit back.
Barjin
bit the wolverine perhaps a dozen times; each strike put more blood and more
fur into the hungry mace's gaping mouth. The burrowing stopped, but Barjin kept
pounding.
* * * *
*
"Ow!
Ow! Ow! Ow! Ow!" Pikel grunted, rolling out of the burning pile. His
clothes had caught in several places; his beard no longer appeared green, but
the thick-skinned dwarf had taken no real damage in his tumble with the flaming
zombie, and he rolled about the floor, suffocating the last stubborn embers.
Ivan
started toward his brother but changed direction suddenly, seeing that Mullivy,
too, had begun to rise. Ivan had seen enough of that one. He crept over, using
the crackle of the fire to cover Percival footsteps, and took up a position
just to the side of the rising zombie.
Mullivy
was no longer burning. Barjin's protection spell kept the flames from his
rotting flesh, and now all the oil and clothing, the fuel for his fires, had
been consumed. He came up still focused on Pikel, taking no notice of the dwarf
winding up just behind his shoulder.
Ivan
quickly put a finger across each side of his double-bladed axe, testing to see
which edge was the sharper. He shrugged then-both seemed equally capable-and
whipped the blade across at his own eye level. It sliced just above the
zombie's shoulder, as Ivan had planned, and hit the creature squarely on the
side of the neck. More than the weakened flesh of a zombie's thin neck would be
needed to slow the blow of an enraged Ivan Bouldershoulder.
Ivan
smiled with grim satisfaction as the zombie tumbled to the side, its head
spinning through the air far from its body.
"Oo!"
remarked an appreciative and admiring Pikel.
"Had
it coming," Ivan snorted back, sharing a smile with toe brother he had
thought dead.
Their
mirth was short-lived. Mullivy's corpse stood up between them, deaf and blind
but flailing wildly with both arms. One connected on toe side of Pikel's head,
knocking off Percival pot helmet.
"Oo!"
Pikel squeaked again, and he slipped one step to toe side and smacked toe
headless zombie with his club. He leaned and glanced at Ivan and both brothers
understood toe proper tactics.
They
worked in unison, two dwarves who knew each other's moves as well as his own.
They surrounded toe zombie, one on either side, and moved synchronously in
circles. Ivan prodded Mullivy's shoulder, then jumped back. The zombie shifted
and waved its arms futilely at toe empty air. Pikel, behind the monster, waded
in with a heavy blow.
Mullivy
spun to get at the newest attacker, and Ivan came in behind, launching an
overhead chop into the zombie's shoulder with enough force to take off one arm.
It went
on for a long while, though both dwarves actually would have preferred to make
this fun last a bit longer. Finally, though, Mullivy's dismembered corpse fell
to toe floor and did not try to rise.
* * * *
*
Still
dazed and disoriented, Cadderly witnessed the horrors at the altar from across
the room. He knew that Newander was probably dead, and he knew, too, that the
evil priest would advance next toward Danica.
He saw
Percival love, climbing up from the floor, trembling violently from the
chilling frost and gasping and squinting on toe edges of Newander's musk cloud.
Blood
stained one of Barjin's legs, and he limped noticeably as he struggled away
from toe still wolverine's stubborn clutch, but the priest's expression showed
only rage, and he waved his mace with sure and easy swings.
"Newander,"
Cadderly called hopelessly, desperately, wanting someone to intervene and stop
this madness. He knew that the druid, his head and back a bloody pulp, would
never answer.
Danica
moved next, drawing her crystalline daggers and launching them in rapid
succession. The first bit the priest in toe shoulder, drawing just a tiny line
of blood. The second had even less success. It managed to cut through toe
priest's conical cap, but the angle of toe hat deflected it above Barjin's
head, where it hung weirdly and harmlessly.
Barjin
rubbed his eyes, stepped over toe druid, and bore down on Danica. She fell into
a low, defensive posture as though she would spring into him, but then dove
straight backward.
Cadderly
understood Danica's reaction; she feared another blast from that awful mace.
And even as Cadderly watched, the priest brought the weapon in line.
Cadderly
watched Danica move back beside the altar, steadily backpedaling from the
advancing priest. All of Cadderly's pain, so overwhelming just a moment ago,
suddenly seemed insignificant next to Danica's troubles. He shook the dizziness
away, denied the weakness in his limbs, and forced himself to his knees, drawing
his crossbow and fitting another dart.
He
nearly swooned from the permeating cold and bit his hip right through in
fighting against it, understanding the price of failure. He leveled the
crossbow Barjin's way, had the evil priest in line, and knew that those
vestments would not stop the enchanted dart.
He
hesitated. A voice screamed in protest inside Cadderly's head, a distant echo
of the vow he had made when he had first decided to construct the bow and
darts. "Not as a weapon!" he growled under his breath, but as the bow
began to slip toward the floor, Cadderly looked back at Danica, growled in
defiance and tightened his grip. Struggling with his conscience through every
inch, he stubbornly brought the crossbow up level again.
Cadderly
nearly cried out a moment later, believing his hesitation might have cost
Danica dearly. Barjin launched a series of mighty blows at the young woman, who
somehow managed to stagger out of the biting mace's grasp.
Cadderly
saw an out.
"Feel
the cold," he heard Barjin snarl, distantly, as though he were viewing it
all through a crystal ball. The priest held the cruel mace out in front of him,
its mouth opened wide.
Danica,
agile despite her wounds, desperately leaped to the side.
"No!"
Cadderly cried, and his dart found its way right between the evil weapon's
fangs.
There was a sharp crack, and Barjin barely
managed to keep his grip on the jolted mace. For an interminable moment,
nothing at all seemed to happen, but Cadderly could tell from the priest's
shocked expression that something was indeed going on within Barjin's prized
weapon.
Without
warning, the top of the Screaming Maiden's head blew off. Barjin still held the
broken weapon by the handle; he seemed as if he could not let go. Multicolored
sparks flared as the magical energy burst forth unbridled, showering the entire
center region of the room.
"Oo!"
Pikel and Ivan squealed together.
The
sparks caught on Barjin's vestments, burning little holes. The priest screamed
in agony as a spark slipped through the cap's view hole and sizzled into his
eye.
Danica
fell away, diving and rolling and shielding her own eyes with a raised arm.
The
spark shower went on unabated. Blue sparks erupted right into Barjin's head,
catching the side of his conical hood as he desperately lurched. Red sparks
flew out in a sudden circular explosion, spinning and rising and then falling
over Danica, Barjin, and the evil altar. A small fireball popped straight up
from the broken mace, exploding into the ceiling. Lighted specks of dust
descended, only to be devoured by the continuing shower.
Across
the room, Cadderly squinted and wondered if he had inadvertently set something
into motion that would destroy them all.
Then it
ended. The base of the Screaming Maiden dropped to the floor and sputtered to a
smoldering death.
Off
came Barjin's conical hood, and then off, too, came the fast-burning vestments.
They fell apart, destroyed by both the wolverine musk and the sparks, as Barjin
clawed at them, Frantically trying to get the hot embers away from his skin. He
cursed and spat at his own foolishness for putting the spell of fire protection
on his zombie instead of on himself.
The
priest's eyes darted wildly. Cadderly was still kneeling.
To his
side, the triumphant dwarves stood over the gruesome remains of the zombie.
Then his gaze settled on Danica, apparently unarmed and unarmored, who seemed
the easiest target. Wiping the musk and sparks from her face, she wasn't even
looking at him.
Barjin
had made many mistakes in his life, but none were more complete than his
assumption that Danica would be an easy catch. He reached out for her, meaning
to hook her around the neck with his strong arm and bring her in, choking,
against his chest.
His arm
had almost reached her shoulder when Danica reacted. She spun fully and used
her momentum to drive her finger hard against Barjin's shoulder.
"I
already tried that!" Cadderly warned, but he fell silent, and Barjin's arm
fell dead.
The
priest looked down in amazement at his numbed right arm. He started to strike
out with his left, but Danica was simply too quick for him. She caught his
punch in midswing, hooked her fingers over his hand, and jerked his thumb back
so forcefully that, with a crack of bones that sounded as loudly as one of
Pikel's tree trunk hits, Barjin's thumbnail touched his wrist.
Danica
wasn't finished. With a slight twist, she cupped her fingers around Barjin's,
curling her fingertips over the top of the priest's hand. Looking Barjin
straight in the eye, Danica squeezed, her grip forcing Barjin's top knuckles
back in on themselves and sending waves of excruciating pain rolling up his
arm. He tried to resist, mentally telling his arm to pull away, but Danica's
assault blocked out his determined call; the unrelenting pain prevented him
from taking any actions against her, or any actions at all. Even if his other
arm had not been "killed," he could not have responded.
He
gurgled indecipherably; all the world became a blur.
Danica
sneered and pulled down on the trapped hand, driving Barjin to his knees. She
tightened her free hand into a ball and lined up Barjin's face.
"Danica
..." breathed a horrified Cadderly.
"Here,
now, don't we get a piece of him?" came a gruff call from the side.
"He's the one who killed me brother."
Pikel turned
incredulously on Ivan. "Oh?"
"Well,
he tried to kill me brother," Ivan corrected, grinning from ear to ear.
Danica
uncurled her fist. Her anger was lost in sadness and concern as she looked at
Cadderly. The pitiful image stopped her cold. Cadderly was still kneeling,
staring at Danica, his hands outstretched in a silent plea and his gray eyes
unconsciously judging her.
Danica
twisted Barjin's arm around, cupped her other arm under his shoulder and sent
him rolling toward the dwarves.
Ivan
scooped him up roughly and half-rolled and half-bounced him to Pikel, crying,
"Ye killed me brother!"
"Me
brudder!" Pikel echoed, spinning the dizzy priest about and launching him
back at Ivan.
Ivan
caught him and sent him bounding back.
Cadderly
realized that the dwarfs game could easily get out of hand. Both were injured,
and angry, and with the cursing bottle spewing smoke so very close, their pain
and rage could bring them to new heights of violence.
"Do
not kill him!" Cadderly screamed at them. Pikel looked at him
incredulously and Ivan caught Barjin, slammed the priest to the ground, and
held him by the hair.
"Not
kill him?" Ivan asked. "What're ye thinking to do with this
one?"
"Do
not kill him!" Cadderly demanded again. He suspected that he'd need more
than the protests of his own conscience to convince the agitated dwarves, so he
played a pragmatic game. "We need to question him, to learn if he has
allies and where they might be."
"Yeah!"
roared Ivan. "What about it?" He jerked Barjin's head back so violently
that Cadderly thought the dwarf had broken the man's neck.
"Not
now, Ivan," Cadderly explained. "Later, in the library, where we will
find maps and writings to aid us in our interrogation."
"Ye're
a lucky one, ye are," Ivan said, putting his considerable nose right
against Barjin's, pushing the priest's smaller proboscis flat against his
cheek. "I'd get ye talking, don't ye doubt!"
Indeed
Barjin didn't doubt Ivan's words, but he hardly felt lucky, especially when
Ivan hoisted him back up and bounced him over to Pikel once again.
Cadderly
walked over and draped his arm across Danica's shoulders. She stood quietly,
looking down at the druid who had sacrificed everything for their cause.
Newander's bones continued to crackle, as his body tried to revert to its
natural form in death. He got about halfway there. His calm and wise face once
more became recognizable, and most of Ue wolverine hair disappeared, but then
the transition stopped. Death had stolen the magic, the energy.
"He
was a good friend," Cadderly whispered, but he thought his words
incredibly lame. Words could not carry the sense of grief that he felt, both
for the druid and for the many others who had perished under the curse-the
curse that he had loosed.
That
thought inevitably led Cadderly's gaze to the altar and the bottle, still
pouring smoke, oblivious to the defeat of its guiding priest.
"It
is for me to do," Cadderly surmised, hoping he was right. He took the
stopper from the altar and gingerly reached out, his mind rushing through a
hundred different scenarios of what would happen if he were unable to close the
bottle.
He was
not. He placed the stopper over the bottle and patted it down, ending the smoky
stream.
Cadderly
felt a bump on his shoulder and thought that Danica had put her head on him for
support. He turned to acknowledge her apparent relief, but she limply fell past
him, face down to the floor.
Back by
the door, the others went down, too. Barjin tumbled heavily over Ivan, and for
a moment, not a thing moved. Only Barjin got back up, snarling and cursing.
"You,"
he said accusingly at Cadderly. The evil priest grabbed Ivan's axe in his one
working arm and headed Cadderly's way.
The
Most Fatal Horror
The
shock brought Druzil abruptly from his sleepy state. The bottle had been
closed! The chaos curse, which Druzil had waited decades to witness, had been
defeated! The imp still could recognize the misty magic in the air, but already
it was beginning to diminish.
Druzil
reached out with his thoughts toward Barjin but found telepathic communication
to the priest blocked by a wall of rage. He didn't really want to go into the
altar room; he had seen the formidable dwarves tear apart Barjin's zombie and
feared another dart from the young priest. When Druzil glanced around at the
empty corridors, he realized that he had no other way to go. He reached down to
the small pouch hanging on the base of one wing and pulled it free, clutching
it in his taloned hands.
He
crept up to the door. Beyond Mullivy's chopped up remains lay the two
unconscious dwarves, and farther in, by the altar, a young woman. Druzil's
surprise at the unexpected scene lasted only as long as it took the imp to
consider what had transpired. The sudden shock of the chaos curse's end, the
termination of the magic that had permeated these peoples' thoughts so fully,
had overcome them.
Druzil
saw Barjin advance on the young priest-and now the imp knew that this young man
had been the catalyst, the one who had opened the bottle. Apparently, he also
had been the one to close it.
The
great evil priest seemed not so powerful in Druzil's eyes anymore. Barjin's
vestments and weapon were gone, one arm hung limply at his side, and, most
important, he had allowed the bottle to be closed.
There
it rested, powerless, atop the altar. Druzil had an impulse to go and get it,
to whisk it away through the fire gate back to Castle Trinity. The imp quickly
dismissed that notion. Not only would he have to get within striking distance
of the young man who earlier had brought him down, but if he took the bottle
and Barjin somehow survived the day, the priest's continuing mission at the
library would be futile. And the priest would not be happy.
No,
Druzil decided, right now the bottle was not worth the many risks. If Barjin survived,
perhaps the priest would find another catalyst to rejuvenate the curse. Druzil
could get back here if that came to pass.
The imp
opened the small pouch he held and looked away from the impending battle, to
the brazier that, fortunately, still burned.
* * * *
*
Cadderly
started to reach for another dart but realized that the evil priest would get
to him before he could load it. Even if he did get his crossbow readied,
Cadderly doubted that he could find the courage to use it against a living man.
Barjin
sensed his ambivalence. "You should have let the dwarves kill me," he
snickered.
"No!"
Cadderly replied firmly. He dropped his crossbow and slipped one finger into
his pocket, into the loop of his spindle-disks.
"Did
you really believe that I would provide information, that keeping me alive
would prove beneficial?" Barjin asked.
Cadderly
shook his head. Barjin had missed the point. Cadderly had only made that claim
to convince Ivan and Pikel not to kill him. His true motives in keeping Barjin
alive had nothing to do with information, but with his own desire not to kill a
man he did not have to kill. "We had no reason to kill you," he said
evenly. "The fight was already won."
"So
you believed," snarled Barjin. He skipped across the remaining distance to
Cadderly and whipped Ivan's axe across as viciously as his wounded hand would
allow.
Anticipating
the attack, Cadderly easily dodged aside. He pulled his hand from his pocket
and sent Percival spindle-disks flying out at Barjin. They connected with a
thud on Barjin's chest, but the mighty priest was more startled than injured.
He
looked at Cadderly-or more pointedly, at Cadderly's coiled weapon hand-for a
moment, then laughed aloud.
Cadderly
nearly threw himself at the mocking priest, but he realized that was exactly
what his opponent wanted him to do. His only chance in this fight was to play
defensively, the same way he had defeated Kierkan Rufo back in his room. He
grinned widely against the continuing laughter and tried to appear as confident
as possible.
Barjin
was not Kierkan Rufo. The evil priest had seen countless battles, had defeated
seasoned warriors in single combat, and had directed armies marching across the
Vaasan plains. After just a single viewing, this veteran's confident smile
revealed that he had surmised the limitations of Cadderly's strange weapon, and
he knew as well as Cadderly that he would have to make a huge mistake if the
young priest was to have any chance.
"You
should not have returned to this place," Barjin said, calmly. "You
should have left the Edificant Library altogether and given up what was already
lost."
Cadderly paused to consider the unexpected
words, and the even more unexpected, almost resigned, tone. "I
erred," he replied, "when first I came down here. I returned only to
correct the wrong." He glanced over at the bottle to emphasize his point.
"And now I have done that."
"Have
you?" Barjin teased. "Your friends are down, young fool. All those in
the library are down, I would guess. When you closed the bottle, you weakened
your allies more than your enemies."
Cadderly
could not deny the priest's taunt, but he still believed that he had done the
right thing in closing the bottle. He would find a way to revive his friends,
and all the others. Perhaps they were only sleeping.
"Do
you truly believe that, once loosed, Tuanta Quiro Miancay, the Most Fatal
Horror, could be defeated simply by placing the stopper back in the
flask?" Barjin smiled widely. "Look," he said, pointing over at
the altar. "Even now the agent of my goddess Talona battles its way back
through your pitiful barrier, back into the air it has claimed as Talona's
domain."
Cadderly
should have seen the trick coming, but his own insecurity concerning the
unknown bottle and curse caused him to glance to the side again. Still, he was
not caught completely off his guard when Barjin waded straight in, growling and
swinging.
Cadderly
ducked under one cut, then rolled to the side as Barjin reversed Percival swing
and came with a wicked overhead chop. Cadderly tried to scramble back to his
feet, but Barjin was too quick. Before he could rise, he was rolling again,
back the other way, to avoid another dipping slice.
Cadderly
knew that he couldn't keep this up for long, nor could he launch any effective
counters from a position on the floor. Barjin, relentless with the taste of
victory on his drooling lips, kept the two-headed axe under perfect control and
readied yet another strike. The issue seemed decided.
It
became an eerie, almost slow-motion sequence for Cadderly as he watched Barjin
maneuvering into position. Was this the moment of his death? What then of
Danica and Ivan and Pikel?
The
flap of wings sounded by the door. Cadderly, too engrossed with Percival own
dilemma, hardly took note, but Barjin did glance around.
Seeing
Percival opening, Cadderly rolled away as fast as he could. Barjin easily could
have caught up to him, but the priest seemed more concerned with the unexpected
appearance of his missing imp.
"Where
have you been?" Barjin demanded. Stripped of his vestments and weapon,
ragged and beaten, the priest's words did not carry much authority.
Druzil
didn't even answer. He floated across to the brazier, pausing only to scoop up
Barjin's necromancer's stone.
"Put
it back!" Barjin roared. "You play a dangerous game, imp."
Druzil
considered the stone, then the priest, then moved to the brazier. His gaze
again drifted back to the closed bottle, but if he was considering a try for
it, he quickly thought better of it. The enraged Barjin, if not the young
priest, surely would strike him down if he went within reach.
"I
will protect it," Druzil offered, holding up the stone. "And the
bottle?"
"You
will run and hide!" Barjin retorted sharply. "You think me
beaten?"
Druzil
shrugged, his wings nearly burying Percival head with the action.
"Stay
and watch, cowardly imp," Barjin proclaimed. "Watch as I regain my
victory and finish off this pitiful library."
Druzil
hesitated for a long moment, considering the offer. "I prefer a safer
haven," he announced. "I will return when things are under your
control."
"Leave
the stone!" Barjin commanded.
Druzil's
smile revealed much to the priest. The imp clutched the powerful necromancer's
stone all the tighter and dropped his powder into the burning brazier. The
magical fire flashed and burned with a bluish hue, and Druzil casually stepped
through the reopened gate.
"Coward!"
Barjin cried. "I will win this day. I will loose Tuanta Quiro Miancay
again, and you, cowardly imp, will no longer be treated as an ally!"
His
threats were lost in the crackle of the brazier's flames.
Barjin
spun back on Cadderly, now standing around on the other side of the altar,
opposite the priest. "You can still save yourself and your friends,"
Barjin purred, suddenly friendly. "Join me. Open the bottle once more. The
power you will realize ..."
Cadderly
saw through the He and cut the priest short, though Barjin's sudden charm was
effective enough to be shocking. "You need me to open it because you
cannot, because it must be opened by one who is not allied with your god,"
he reasoned.
Barjin's
curved smile did not diminish.
"How
can I agree, then?" Cadderly asked him. "To do so would be to join
with you, but would that not ally me with your designs and with your god? Would
that not break the conditions?"
Cadderly
thought himself quite clever, thought that his logic had cornered the priest,
as Barjin mulled the words over. When Barjin looked back at him, Percival eyes
shining fiercely, Cadderly knew that he had thought wrong.
"Not
if you open the bottle for a better reason," Barjin said, turning to view
Danica and the dwarves, "to save the woman perhaps." Barjin took a
step away.
All
fear flew from Cadderly at that moment. He jumped out from behind the altar,
meaning to intercept Barjin, determined to stop the priest at any cost. He
stopped suddenly, eyes widening in horror.
Another
being had entered the room, one that Cadderly had seen before.
Barjin's
reaction was just the opposite of Cadderly's. He swung the axe high above his
head victoriously, feeling that his base of power was returning, that his
fortunes had turned back for the better. "I had thought you
destroyed," he said to the scorched mummy.
Khalif,
the less than complete spirit, savaged and removed from all sense of sanity,
did not respond.
"What
are you doing?" the evil priest demanded as the mummy stalked in. Barjin
swiped with the axe, hoping to keep the monster at bay, but the mummy simply
slapped the weapon from his hand.
"Halt!"
Barjin cried. "You must obey me!"
Khalif
had other ideas. Before Barjin could say anything else, a heavy arm slammed
into the side of Percival head and sent him tumbling to the wall by the
brazier.
Barjin
knew his doom. The mummy was out of control, crazed with pain and rage. It
hated all life, hated Barjin for bringing it back from its rest. With all that
had happened, both to Barjin and to the mummy, the priest's domination was no
more.
Barjin
looked desperately to the table where he had left the necromancer's stone, the
one item that might aid him now against this undead foe. Then he remembered,
and he cursed Druzil's abrupt departure.
He
propped himself up against the wall and looked about desperately. To his right
loomed the burning brazier, the gate reopened but not an escape route for a
being of the material plane. To Barjin's left, though, was Pikel's impromptu
doorway, an exit to the tunnels beyond the room.
He
tried to rise, but a throbbing pain in his head dropped him back to his knees.
Undaunted, Barjin began to crawl. Before he could get to the hole, though, the
mummy cut him off and slammed him again into the wall. Barjin had no defense
against the ensuing onslaught. He raised his one functioning arm, but the
mummy's heavy blows snapped it aside.
Cadderly
stood very still beside the altar, consciously telling himself to take some
action. The fear gripped him, but he at last overcame it by conjuring an image
of the mummy s next move after finishing off Barjin. Danica was the next
closest target.
He took
his crossbow in hand and loaded it, seeking some way to get the monster off the
priest. Cadderly had no love for the man, and he held no hopes that helping
Barjin might bring some mutually beneficial compromise, but despite the fact
that Barjin was his enemy, he could not let the human be killed by this undead
monster.
Another
problem presented itself as Cadderly leveled Percival bow for a shot. The imp's
passage had reopened the inter-planar gate, and now some lower plane denizen
had found its way in. A hideous face appeared in the flames, obscure, but huge,
and growing more tangible with each passing second.
Cadderly
instinctively lined his crossbow up with this newest intruder, but then swung
it back at the mummy, realizing that it was Percival most pressing problem.
Another
scorch mark appeared on the mummy's rotted linen; another jolt shook the
monster, but the scabrous thing did not turn away from Barjin. The priest
managed once to stand up, only to be immediately pounded back to the floor.
A huge
black wing tip came out the side of the brazier fire. Cadderly nearly lost
Percival breath; the creature forming in the flames was monstrous, much larger
than the imp.
Cadderly
loaded and fired again at the mummy. Another bit, and now, with Barjin offering
no resistance, the mummy wheeled about.
Cadderly
felt that paralyzing fear welling in him again, but he did not let it slow his
practiced movements. He had used more than half his darts and had no idea if he
had enough remaining to finally defeat this undead thing, had no idea if his
attacks were even causing any real damage to the monster.
Again,
he refused to let his fears slow him. Another dart whistled out at the mummy.
This one did not explode, but dove through a hole created by a previous dart
and cut right through the tattered linen bindings.
At first Cadderly was more concerned with
getting another dart fitted; he knew that his miss would allow the monster to
close, but then he heard Barjin grunt.
The
dart thudded into the chest of the sitting priest. The next interminable second
ended with the noise that Cadderly now dreaded, for the dart had enough
remaining momentum to collapse and explode.
The
mummy took a step out, giving Cadderly a view of the priest. Barjin lay nearly
flat. Only his head and shoulders remained propped against the wall. He gasped
and clutched the hole in his chest, his eyes unblinking, though he seemed not
to see anything, not to be aware of anything beyond his own demise. He gasped
again, a gout of blood bursting from his mouth, and then he lay still.
Cadderly
did not even think of his movements. His mind seemed to disengage from his
body, to give way to Percival own instincts for survival and his own boiling
rage at what he had done. He took up his water skin under his free arm, popped
off the cap, and drove the mummy back toward the wall with a steady stream of
blessed water.
The
liquid hissed as it struck the evilly enchanted linen, etching blackened scars.
The mummy issued a loud, outraged roar and tried to cover up, but it had no way
to block the small but painful stream.
In the
brazier, a hideous face was dear now, leering hungrily at Cadderly. Cadderly
thought to defeat both foes with a single attack. He angled his water skin,
seeking to drive the mummy into the flames, perhaps to topple the brazier and
dose the gate.
The
mummy did indeed recoil from the spray, but if it feared the blessed water, it
feared the open flames even more. Try as he might, Cadderly could not force it
too near the burning gate.
He
apparently was doing some damage, but Cadderly could not afford this stalemate.
He was running out of water; then what might he use to finish off the mummy?
And if that monster came through the gate ... .
Helplessly, Cadderly fumbled to keep up the
stream and to load another dart. He lifted his crossbow toward the mummy,
trying to find a vital area beyond its blocking arms. What area, he wondered
helplessly, might be the most vulnerable? The eyes? The heart?
The
water skin was empty. The mummy stood straight.
"Last
shot," Cadderly muttered resignedly. He started to pull on the trigger,
then," as he had with Barjin earlier in the fight, he noticed another
possibility.
Pikel's
charge through the wall had caused tremendous structural damage. The hole in
the brickwork was fully four feet wide and half that again high, nearly
reaching the beamed ceiling. One crossbeam, directly above the hole, balanced
precariously on a cracked support. Cadderly moved his arm in that direction and
fired.
The
dart smacked into the wood at the joint between cross-beam and support,
exploding into a small fireball, sending splinters everywhere. The crossbeam
slipped, but, still attached at its other end, it swung down like a pendulum.
The
mummy took only one short step from the wall before the beam slammed into it,
driving it sidelong. It pitched into the brazier, taking the fiery tripod and
bowl right over with it. The hideous image of the otherworldly denizen
disappeared in a huge fireball. Flames engulfed the mummy, eagerly devouring
its layered cloth wrappings. It managed to stagger to its feet-Cadderly
wondered with horror if it might survive even this-but then it crumbled and was
consumed.
Without
the enchanted brazier, the gate was dosed, and gone, too, was Barjin's greatest
undead monster. The flames flared a couple of times, then burned very low,
leaving the smoky room in the dimness of low-burning torches.
Cadderly
understood that victory was within his grasp, but he hardly felt in the mood
for rejoicing. Newander lay dead at his feet, others had died upstairs, and,
perhaps most disconcerting of all to the young scholar, no longer an innocent,
he had killed a man.
Barjin remained propped against the wall, his
lifeless eyes staring out at Cadderly, holding the defenseless young priest in
an accusing gaze.
Cadderly's
arm drooped to his side and the crossbow fell to the floor.
Out of
the Mist
Cadderly
so desperately wanted to close those eyes! He willed himself to go over to the
dead priest and turn his head away, get that accusing stare off him, but it was
an impotent command, and Cadderly knew it. He had not the strength to go
anywhere near Barjin. He moved a few short steps to the side, to get to Danica,
but looked back and imagined that the dead priest's eyes followed him still.
Cadderly
wondered if they would forever.
He
slammed his fist on the floor, trying to shake free of the guilt, to accept the
priest's stare as a necessary price that he must pay. Events had dictated his
actions, he reminded himself, and he determinedly told himself to foster no
regrets.
He
jumped defensively when a small form suddenly darted in through the opening
beside the priest, then managed a weak smile as Percival climbed up him and sat
atop his shoulder, cluttering and complaining as always. Cadderly patted the
squirrel between the ears with a single finger-he needed to do that-then went
to his friends.
Danica
seemed to be sleeping quite peacefully. She would not wake, though, to
Cadderly's call or shake. He found both dwarves in similar states, their
thunderous snores complimenting each other in strange rock-grating harmony.
Pikel's snores, in particular, sounded contented.
Cadderly
grew worried. He had believed the battle won- finally-but why couldn't he wake
his friends? How long would they sleep? Cadderly had heard of curses that
caused slumber for a thousand years, or until certain conditions had been met,
however long that might take.
Perhaps
the battle wasn't yet won. He went back to the altar and examined the bottle.
It seemed harmless enough now, to the naked eye, so Cadderly decided to look
deeper. He moved his thoughts through a series of relaxation exercises that
slipped him into a semimeditative trance. The mist was fast dissipating, that
much he could tell, and no more was emanating from the stoppered bottle. That
gave Cadderly hope; perhaps the slumber would last until the mist was gone.
The
bottle itself, though, did not appear completely neutralized. Cadderly sensed a
life, an energy, within it, a pulsating evil, contained but not destroyed. It
might have been only his imagination, or perhaps what he thought was a
fife-force was merely a manifestation of his own fears. Cadderly honestly
wondered if the remaining flickers within that bottle were playing some role in
the lingering mist. The evil priest had called the mist the Most Fatal Horror,
an agent of Talona. Cadderly recognized the name of the vile goddess, and the
title, normally reserved for Talona's highest-ranking clerics. this mist was indeed some sort of god-stuff,
a simple stopper would not suffice.
Cadderly
came out of his trance and sat down to consider the situation. The key, he
decided, was to accept the evil priest's description of the bottle and not
think of it simply as some secular, though potent, magic.
"Battle
gods with gods," Cadderly mumbled a moment later. He stood again before
the altar, studying not the bottle, but the reflective, gem-studded bowl in
front of it. Cadderly feared what magic tins item might contain, but he chanced
it without delay, tipping the bowl to the side and dumping out the water
stained by the evil priest's foul hands.
He
retrieved a piece of cloth, a piece of Barjin's own vestments, and wiped the
bowl thoroughly, then found Newander's water skin, full as usual, out in the
hallway beyond Pikel's impromptu door. Cadderly consciously avoided looking at
Newander as he reentered the room, meaning to go straight to the altar, but
Percival delayed him. The squirrel sat atop the dead druid, still in his
semitransformed state.
"Get
away from there," Cadderly scolded, but Percival only sat up higher,
clicking excitedly and displaying some small item.
"What
have you got?" Cadderly asked, moving slowly back so as not to startle the
excitable squirrel.
Percival
displayed an oak leaf pendant, the holy symbol of Silvanus, dangling from a
fine leather thong.
"Do
not take that!" Cadderly started to scold, but then he realized that
Percival had something in mind.
Cadderly
bent low, studying Percival more closely and seeking guidance in the wise druid's
face. Newander's visage, so peaceful and accepting of his fate, held him fully.
Percival
shrieked in Cadderly's ear, demanding his attention. The squirrel held out the
pendant and seemed to motion toward the altar.
Confusion
twisted Cadderly's face. "Percival?" he asked.
The
squirrel danced an agitated circle, then shook his little head briskly.
Cadderly blanched.
"Newander?"
he asked meekly.
The
squirrel held out the holy symbol.
Cadderly
considered it for a moment, then, remembering the druids' creed concerning
death as a natural extension of life, he accepted the oak leaf and started back
toward the altar.
The
squirrel shook suddenly, then leaped back up to Cadderly's shoulder.
"Newander?" Cadderly asked again.
The squirrel did not answer. "Percival?" The squirrel perked up its
ears.
Cadderly
paused and wondered what had just transpired. His instincts told him that
Newander's departing spirit somehow had used Percival's body to get a message
to him, but his stubborn sense of reality told him that he probably had
imagined the whole episode. Whatever it was, he now had the druid's holy symbol
in his hand and he knew that the aid of Silvanus could be only a good thing.
Cadderly
wished he had been more attentive in his mundane duties, the simple ceremonies
required of the lesser priests of the Edificant Library. His hands trembling,
he poured the water from Newander's water skin into the gem-studded bowl, and
added to it, with a silent call to Newander's god, the holy symbol.
Cadderly
figured that two gods would be better than one in containing this evil, and
also that Newander's god, dedicated to natural order, might be the most
effective in battling the curse. He dosed his eyes and recited the ceremony to
purify the water, stumbling a few times over the words he had not spoken very
often.
Then it
was completed and Cadderly was left with only his hopes. He lifted the evil
bottle and gently immersed it in the bowl. The water went cold and took on the
same red hue as that within the bottle, and Cadderly feared that he had not
accomplished anything positive.
A
moment later, though, the red hue disappeared altogether, from the water and
the bottle. Cadderly studied it closely, somehow sensing that the pulsating
evil was no more.
Behind
him, Pikel's snore was replaced by a questioning, "Oo oi?"
Cadderly
scooped up the bowl carefully and looked around. Danica and both dwarves were
stirring, though they were not yet coherent. Cadderly moved across the room to
a small cabinet and placed the bowl inside, closing the door as he turned away.
Danica groaned and sat up, holding her head
in both hands. "Me head," Ivan said in a sluggish voice. "Me
head." They exited the tunnel to the south side of the great library half
an hour later, Ivan and Pikel bearing Newander's rigid body and both dwarves
and Danica sporting tremendous headaches. The dawn, just breaking, looked so
good to Cadderly that he considered it a sign that all had been put right and
that the nightmare had ended. His three companions groaned loudly and shielded
their eyes when they came out into the brightness.
Cadderly
would have laughed at them, but when he turned, the sight of Newander stole his
mirth.
* * * *
*
"Ah,
there you are, Rufo," Headmaster Avery said upon entering the angular man's
room. Kierkan Rufo lay on his bed and groaned weakly, pained by the many wounds
he had received in the last couple of days and by a pounding headache that
would not relent.
Avery
waddled over toward him, pausing to belch several times. Avery's head ached,
too, but it was nothing compared to the agony in his bloated stomach. "Get
up, then," the headmaster said, reaching for Rufo's limp wrist.
"Where is Cadderly?"
Rufo
did not reply, did not even allow himself to blink. The curse was no more, but
Rufo had not forgotten all that he had suffered in the past couple of days, at
the hands of both Cadderly and the monk, Danica. He had not forgotten his own
actions, either, and he feared the accusations that might be brought against
him in the coming days.
"We
have so very much to do," Avery went on, "so very much. I do not know
what has befallen our library, but it is a very wicked business indeed. There
are dead, Rufo, many dead, and many more are wandering confused."
Rufo at
last forced himself to a sitting position. His face was bruised and caked in
several places with dried blood, and his wrists and ankles were still sore from
the dwarves' bindings. He hardly thought of the pain at that moment, however.
What had happened to him? What had caused him to so foolishly go after Danica?
What had caused him to reveal his jealousy, in the form of outright hostility,
so clearly to Cadderly?
"Cadderly,"
he breathed quietly. He had almost killed Cadderly; he feared that memory
nearly as much as the potential consequences. His memories came to him as if
from a dark mirror in his heart, and Rufo was not certain that he liked what he
saw.
* * * *
*
"Ws
have been five days with no further incidents," Dean Thobicus said to the
gathering in his audience hall a few days later. All the surviving headmasters,
of both the Oghman and Deneiran sects, were present, as well as Cadderly,
Kierkan Rufo, and the two remaining druids.
Thobicus
shuffled through a pile of reports, then declared, "The Edificant Library
will recover."
There
was a chorus of somewhat subdued cheers and nods. The future might have looked
bright again, but the recent past, particularly the wholesale slaughter of the
visiting Ilmater sect and the death of the heroic druid, Newander, could not be
so easily dismissed.
"We
have you to thank for it," Thobicus said to Cadderly. "You and your
nonsectarian friends-" he nodded an acknowledgment to the druids
"-displayed great bravery and ingenuity in defeating the evil infection
that came into our midst."
Kierkan
Rufo subtly nudged Headmaster Avery.
"Yes?"
Dean Thobicus inquired.
"I
have been requested to remind us all that Cadderly, brave though he was, is not
without responsibility for this catastrophe," Avery began. He cast a look
at Cadderly that showed he was not angered by the young scholar, but that he
indeed held Cadderly's actions against the invading priest in high regard.
Cadderly
took no offense; after seeing the headmaster under the influences of the curse,
he suspected he knew how Avery really felt about him. He almost wished that he
could get the headmaster back under the influence of the curse and talking
again about Cadderly's father and the young scholar's first days at the
library.
It was
an absurd notion, but one that Cadderly enjoyed imagining nonetheless. He
looked past Avery to the tall and angular man leering over the headmaster's
shoulder. Cadderly could point a finger at Rufo, concerning the man's actions
against Danica and himself, and including Cadderly's firm belief that Rufo was
the one who had knocked him into the catacombs in the first place, but many of
Rufo's actions already had been reported and it was unlikely that, given the
extraordinary circumstances, any action would be taken against him, or against
any of the others caught in the curse. Cadderly, still not fully understanding
what the cursing mist had done, was not sure if any reprimands would be
appropriate.
As to
the most serious charge, Cadderly believed that Rufo had kicked him down the
stairs, but he really hadn't seen the blow. Perhaps the evil priest had been in
the wine cellar with him and Rufo. Perhaps the priest had immobilized Rufo, as
he had Ivan later on, then crept up past the man to knock Cadderly down.
Cadderly
shook his head and nearly laughed aloud. It didn't matter, he believed. Now was
a time of forgiveness, when all the remaining priests must band together to
restore the library.
"Do
you find something amusing?" Dean Thobicus asked, somewhat sternly.
Cadderly remembered the accusation against him then and realized that his
introspection might not have been so timely.
"If
I may speak," Arcite interjected.
Thobicus
nodded.
"The
lad cannot be blamed for opening the bottle," the druid explained.
"He is a brave one just for admitting such a thing. Let us all remember
the foe he battled, one who beat us all, except for a handful. Were it not for
Cadderly, and for my friend and god, the evil one would have proved strong
enough to win the day."
"True
enough," admitted Dean Thobicus, "and true enough, too, that Cadderly
must bear some responsibility for what has transpired. Therefore, I declare
that young Cadderly's duties in this incident are not at an end. Who would be
better than he to study the works we possess concerning such curses, to learn
more of the origin of both the priest and this Most Fatal Horror that he
described as an agent of Talona?"
"A
year quest?" Cadderly dared to ask, though it was not his place to speak.
"A
year quest," Dean Thobicus echoed. "At the end of which you are to
deliver a full report to this office. Do not take this responsibility lightly,
as you seem to take so many of your responsibilities." He went on with his
warnings, reminders of the gravity of the situation, but Cadderly didn't even
hear him. He had been given a year quest, an honor normally bestowed
exclusively upon the top-ranking Deneiran priests, and one most often given
only to the headmasters themselves!
When
Cadderly glanced back to Avery, and to Rufo behind him, he saw that they, too,
understood the honor he had been given. Avery tried unsuccessfully to hide his
widening smile, and Rufo, even more unsuccessfully, to hide his frustration.
Indeed,
Rufo, surely out of order and surely to be punished for it, turned about and
stormed out of the audience chamber.
The
meeting was adjourned soon after that, and Cadderly came out flanked by the two
druids.
"I
thank you," Cadderly said to Arcite.
"It
is we who should be grateful," Arcite reminded him. "When the curse
befell us all, it was Arcite and Cleo who could not fight against it and who
would have been beaten."
Cadderly
couldn't hide a chuckle. The druids, and Danica and the dwarves, who had come
over to join the group, looked at him curiously.
"It
is ironic indeed," Cadderly explained. "Newander thought he had failed
because he could not find it in his heart to become as you had, to revert to an
animal form in mind and body."
"Newander
did not fail," Arcite declared.
"Silvanus
held him close," Cleo added.
Cadderly
nodded and smiled again, remembering the sincere peace on the departed druid's
face. He looked up at Arcite suddenly and thought about the squirrel incident,
and whether the druids would know if Newander's departing spirit had
communicated through Percival's body. He stopped himself, though, before the
question was asked.
Maybe
some things were better left to the imagination.
"I'll
be needing that crossbow of yours, and a dart or two," Ivan said after the
druids took their leave. "Figuring to make one for myself!"
Cadderly
instinctively reached for the weapon belted on his hip, then recoiled suddenly
and shook his head. "No more," he said gravely.
"It's
a fine weapon," Ivan protested.
"Too
fine," Cadderly replied. He had heard recently of smoke powder, of cannons
hurling huge projectiles at opposing armies, elsewhere in the Realms. Avery's
scolding, calling Cadderly a "Gondsman," echoed in the young
scholar's mind, for rumors claimed it was the Gondish priests who had loosed
this new and terrible weapon on the world.
For all
that it had aided him, Cadderly did not look upon his crossbow with admiration.
The thought of copies being constructed horrified him. Truly, the crossbow's
power was meager compared to a wizard's fireball or the summoned lightning of a
druid, but it was a power that could fall into the hands of the untrained.
Warriors and magic-users alike spent years training both their minds and their
bodies to attain such proficiency. Weapons such as smoke powder, and Cadderly's
crossbow-and-dart design, circumvented that need of any sacrifice or
self-discipline. Cadderly understood that it was that very discipline that held
the powers in check.
Ivan
started to protest again, but Danica reached around him and covered his mouth
with her hand. Ivan pulled away and grumbled a few curses, but he let the
matter drop.
Cadderly
looked over to Danica, knowing that she understood. For the same reasons that
Danica would not show him the Withering Touch, he could not let his design
become commonplace.
* * * *
*
Druzil
waited for a very long time in the smoking stench of the lower planes. He knew
that Barjin's gate had been closed again shortly after he left, though he had
no way of knowing if the priest had done it intentionally or not. Had Barjin
survived? If so, had he found another victim to reopen the cursing flask?
The
questions nagged at the imp. Even if Barjin had not succeeded or survived, even
if the precious bottle had been destroyed, he knew now the potential for his
recipe and vowed that one day the chaos curse would again descend on the
Realms.
"Do
hurry, Aballister," the imp groaned nervously. The wizard had not summoned
him back to the material plane, a fact that the nervous imp could not ignore,
particularly since the wizard still possessed the recipe. If Aballister somehow
had learned of Druzil's mental connection with Barjin, the wizard might never
trust Druzil enough to bring him back.
The imp
knew not how many days had passed-time was measured differently in the lower
planes-but finally he heard a distant call, a familiar voice. He saw the
distant flicker of a fiery gate and heard the call again, more demanding this
time. Off he soared, through the planar tunnel, and soon he crawled out of
Aballister's brazier to stand in a familiar room in Castle Trinity.
"Too
long," the imp snorted derisively, trying to gain an upper hand. "Why
did you delay?"
Aballister
cast a foul look at him. "I did not know that you had returned to the
lower planes. My contact with Barjin was broken."
Druzil's
long and pointy ears perked up at the mention of the priest, a fact that
brought a sneer to Aballister's lips. Across the room, the magical mirror sat
broken, a wide crack running its length.
"What
happened?" Druzil asked, leading Aballister's gaze to the mirror.
"I
overextended its powers," the wizard replied. "Trying to aid
Barjin."
"And?"
"Barjin
is dead," Aballister said. "He has failed utterly."
Druzil
ran a clawed hand along the wall and snarled in dismay.
Aballister
was more pragmatic. "The priest was too reckless," he declared.
"He should have taken more care, should have set his goals on a more
vulnerable target. The Edificant Library! It is the most defended structure in
all the region, a fortress teeming with mighty priests who would seek our
destruction if they learned of our plans! Barjin was a fool, do you hear? A
fool!"
Druzil,
ever the practical familiar, thought it prudent not to disagree. Besides,
Aballister's observations apparently were correct.
"But
fear not, my leathery friend," Aballister went on, his attitude becoming
more friendly toward his imp. "It is but a minor setback to our
cause."
Druzil
thought Aballister might be enjoying this just a bit too much. Barjin may have
been a potential rival, but he was also, after all, an ally.
"Ragnor
and his charges march for Shilmista," Aballister went on. "The
ogrillon will win against the elves and sweep south around the mountains. The
region will fall to more conventional methods."
Druzil
allowed himself a bit of optimism, though he preferred a more insidious attack
method, like the chaos curse. "But he was so close, my master," the
imp whined. "Barjin had brought the library to its knees. It was his to
finish, and then the cornerstone of any resistance we might face would have
been gone before the rest of the region even knew the danger in its
midst." Druzil clenched a clawed hand before him. "He had victory in
his grasp!"
"His
grasp was not as strong as he believed," Aballister sharply pointed out.
"Perhaps,"
Druzil conceded, "but it was that one human, the young man who had first
opened the bottle, who came back to defeat him. Barjin should have killed that
one right away."
Aballister
nodded, remembering the last image he had seen of Barjin's altar room, and
could not help but smile.
"Surprisingly
resourceful, that one," Druzil sputtered.
"Not
so surprising," Aballister replied casually. "He is my son."
Epilogue
He
huddled between towering piles of huge tomes, immersed in his important year
quest. The security of the Edificant Library was at stake, Cadderly believed,
and his ability to discern the source of the chaos curse and the background of
the powerful priest would be a critical factor in reestablishing that security.
Cadderly
knew that the implications of what had happened might go far beyond the library
itself. Carradoon, on the lake to the east, was not a large and well-fortified
town, and the elves of Shilmista were neither numerous nor particularly
interested in affairs beyond their own borders. If the appearance of the evil
priest foreshadowed things to come, then Cadderly's headmasters desperately
needed information.
The
young scholar alternated his time researching known curses and known symbols.
He pored through dozens of tomes and ancient, yellowed scrolls, and interviewed
every scholar, host or visitor, who had any knowledge of either field. The evil
priest had proclaimed Talona as his goddess, and the trident symbol was
somewhat similar to the Lady of Poison's triangle-and-teardrop insignia, but
what particular organization that trident represented, Cadderly could not
discover.
Danica
watched Cadderly from a distance, not wanting to disturb his vital work. She
understood the discipline that Cadderly now needed, the focused determination
that excluded everything else, including her, from his days. The young woman
was not concerned; she knew that as soon as time permitted, she and Cadderly
would continue their relationship.
For
Ivan and Pikel, the days passed with wonderful boredom. Both dwarves had been
beaten badly in the catacombs, but both were soon well on the way to recovery.
Pikel held fast to his resolve to become a druid, and Ivan, after witnessing
Newander's heroics, no longer chided him about his choice.
"I'm
not thinking a dwarf would make a druid," Ivan huffed whenever anyone
asked him about it, "but it's me brother's choice to be making."
So life
gradually returned to normal at the proud and ancient library. Summer came on
in full and the sunshine seemed like deliverance from the nightmare. Those who
came to the library's front doors that season often noticed, basking high in
the branches of a tree along the road, a plump white squirrel, usually licking
casasa-nut and butter from its paws.
* * * *
*
To the
elf prince Elbereth, the sun did not seem so marvelous. Rather, it revealed him,
leaving him open and vulnerable. It was a strange feeling for the skilled
warrior, who could put four arrows in the air before the first ever hit its
mark, and who could cut down an enraged giant with his finely crafted sword.
It was
that same warrior training that told Elbereth to be afraid now. A week before,
he had led a contingent of elves against a small party of huge and hairy
bugbears. His troops had won the encounter quickly, but, unlike the expected
rabble filtering down from the wild mountains, these bugbears were well
disciplined and well armed, and each wore a glove bearing a similar insignia.
Elbereth
had fought in several wars. He knew an advanced scouting party when he
encountered one.
The
determined elf plodded on through the broken mountain passes, leading his weary
horse. The multitude of bells on the shining white steed did not ring cheerily
in Elbereth's ears, nor did the sun seem so warm. The magic of Shilmista had
long been on the wane; Elbereth's proud people were not so numerous anymore. If
a major attack did come, Shilmista would be Sorely pressed.
Elbereth
had left the forest, bearing one of the gloves, to discover what his people
might be up against, to the only place in the region where he might learn of
his enemies: the Edificant Library.
He
looked again at the curious trident-and-bottle design on the glove, then high
and far in the distance, to the ivy-strewn structure just coining into view.